Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a doctrine_n teach_v 2,953 5 5.8574 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27015 The safe religion, or, Three disputations for the reformed catholike religion against popery proving that popery is against the Holy Scriptures, the unity of the catholike church, the consent of the antient doctors, the plainest reason, and common judgment of sense it self / by Richard Baxter. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1657 (1657) Wing B1381; ESTC R16189 289,769 704

There are 42 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

church_n li._n 3._o cap_n 7._o of_o the_o several_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n wherein_o some_o in_o the_o church_n err_v but_o not_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o neither_o do_v that_o church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v ●_o hold_v that_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o romanist_n now_o urge_v nor_o that_o in_o sufficiency_n they_o now_o charge_v it_o with_o nor_o corruption_n of_o the_o original_n nor_o necessity_n of_o follow_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n nor_o the_o heresy_n touch_v man_n creation_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o certain_a barbarous_a schoolman_n as_o that_o there_o be_v three_o different_a estate_n of_o man_n the_o first_o of_o pure_a nature_n without_o addition_n of_o grace_n or_o sin_n and_o two_o other_o the_o one_o of_o grace_n the_o other_o of_o sin_n that_o all_o those_o evil_n that_o be_v find_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n since_o his_o fall_n as_o ignorance_n concupiscence_n contrariety_n between_o the_o better_a and_o mean_a faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n difficulty_n to_o do_v well_o and_o proneness_n to_o do_v evil_a be_v all_o natural_a the_o condition_n of_o pure_a nature_n that_o be_v of_o nature_n as_o consider_v in_o itself_o it_o will_v come_v forth_o from_o god_n that_o these_o evil_n be_v not_o sinful_a nor_o have_v their_o beginning_n from_o sin_n that_o they_o be_v the_o consequent_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o state_n of_o creation_n but_o restrain_v by_o addition_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n without_o which_o the_o integrity_n of_o nature_n be_v full_a and_o perfect_a that_o man_n in_o the_o state_n of_o pure_a nature_n that_o be_v as_o they_o may_v have_v be_v create_v of_o god_n in_o the_o integrity_n of_o nature_n without_o addition_n of_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o estate_n of_o original_a sin_n differ_v no_o otherwise_o but_o as_o they_o that_o never_o have_v and_o they_o that_o have_v lose_v rich_a and_o precious_a clothing_n so_o that_o original_a sin_n be_v but_o the_o loss_n of_o that_o without_o which_o nature_n integrity_n may_v stand_v that_o no_o evil_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o fall_n but_o nature_n leave_v to_o herself_o to_o feel_v that_o which_o be_v before_o but_o not_o feel_v nor_o discern_v while_o the_o addition_n of_o grace_n better_v nature_n none_o of_o these_o error_n touch_v the_o estate_n of_o man_n creation_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o private_a fancy_n and_o conceit_n of_o man_n so_o likewise_o touch_v original_a sin_n there_o be_v that_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o inherent_a in_o each_o particular_a man_n bear_v of_o adam_n but_o that_o adam_n personal_a sin_n be_v impute_v only_o that_o the_o propagation_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o general_a mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n that_o the_o punishment_n of_o it_o be_v not_o any_o sensible_a smart_n or_o positive_a evil_n but_o privative_a only_o and_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o three_o place_n neither_o hell_n nor_o heaven_n name_v limbus_n puerorum_fw-la which_o be_v a_o place_n whereas_o some_o think_v they_o who_o be_v condemn_v thither_o though_o they_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o all_o possibility_n of_o ever_o come_v thither_o yet_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o natural_a happiness_n and_o do_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a content_n of_o eternal_a life_n these_o pelagian_a heresy_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o they_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v condemn_v reject_v and_o refute_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o christian_a verity_n by_o many_o worthy_a member_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n who_o as_o they_o never_o receive_v these_o part_n of_o false_a doctrine_n so_o likewise_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o live_v neither_o know_v nor_o approve_v that_o distinction_n and_o difference_n of_o venial_a and_o mortal_a sin_n which_o the_o romanist_n now_o teach_v nor_o power_n of_o nature_n to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n command_v though_o not_o according_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o and_o to_o do_v acti●●s_n moral_o good_a or_o not_o sinful_a without_o concurrence_n of_o special_a grace_n nor_o election_n and_o reprobation_n depend_v on_o the_o foresight_n of_o something_o in_o we_o positive_a or_o privative_a nor_o merit_n of_o congruence_n and_o condignity_n nor_o work_v of_o supererogation_n nor_o counsel_n of_o perfection_n as_o they_o now_o teach_v nor_o justification_n by_o perfection_n of_o inherent_a quality_n nor_o uncertainty_n of_o grace_n nor_o seven_o sacrament_n proper_o so_o name_v nor_o local_a presence_n nor_o transubstantiation_n nor_o ●rall_a manducation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n nor_o real_a sacrifice_a of_o it_o for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a nor_o remission_n of_o sin_n after_o this_o life_n nor_o torment_v of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n in_o a_o part_n of_o hell_n hundred_o of_o year_n by_o devil_n in_o corporal_a fire_n out_o of_o which_o prayer_n shall_v deliver_v ●hem_n nor_o that_o the_o saint_n hear_v our_o prayer_n ●ow_o or_o be_v acquaint_v with_o our_o particular_a want_n nor_o the_o gross_a idolatry_n in_o those_o time_n commit_v and_o intolerable_a abuse_n find_v in_o the_o number_n fashion_n and_o worship_n of_o their_o image_n nor_o their_o absolution_n as_o now_o they_o define_v it_o nor_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n grow_v out_o of_o the_o superstuity_n of_o saint_n merit_n not_o rewardable_a in_o themselves_o to_o be_v dispose_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o supply_n of_o other_o man_n want_n to_o release_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n by_o way_n of_o indulgence_n nor_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n and_o plenitude_n of_o his_o power_n such_o and_o so_o great_a that_o he_o may_v dep●s●_n prince_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o crown_n and_o digr●●ie●_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v he_o may_v not_o be_v bring_v into_o order_n or_o depose_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o a_o general_a council_n those_o be_v the_o error_n which_o we_o condemn_v and_o our_o adversary_n maintain_v and_o defend_v these_o we_o be_v all_o assure_a be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v though_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o some_o in_o that_o church_n all_o these_o we_o offer_v to_o prove_v to_o be_v error_n in_o matter_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o see_v we_o can_v have_v peace_n no_o long_o with_o our_o adversary_n but_o by_o approve_v these_o impiety_n we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o divide_v ourselves_o from_o they_o or_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o to_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v accurse_v anathematise_v and_o reject_v by_o they_o rather_o than_o to_o subscribe_v to_o so_o many_o error_n and_o heresy_n contrary_a to_o the_o christian_a and_o catholic_a verity_n whereas_o the_o papist_n have_v little_a else_o to_o say_v to_o we_o but_o only_o to_o call_v still_o for_o a_o catalogue_n of_o professor_n to_o prove_v the_o successive_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n we_o require_v of_o they_o first_o a_o answer_n to_o those_o write_n that_o have_v be_v extant_a so_o long_o on_o this_o subject_n especial_o bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr successione_n &_o statu_fw-la eccles_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_v defend_v by_o master_n sing_n and_o master_n puttock_n doctor_n fields_n treat_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o the_o appendix_n to_o the_o three_o part_n simon_n birkbecks_n protestant_n evidence_n doctor_n whites_n way_n to_o the_o true_a church_n abbot_n against_o hill_n illiricus_fw-la his_o catalogue_n testium_fw-la veritatis_fw-la mornays_n two_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o that_o of_o the_o mass_n johan_n lidii_fw-la walden_n nicol._n vignier_n ecclesiast_n histor._n and_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o own_o writer_n your_o after_o pope_n aenaeas_n silvius_n histor_n bohem._n and_o that_o common_o cite_a passage_n of_o your_o inquisitor_n rainnerius_n which_o i_o will_v adjoyn_v rainerius_n contr_n walden_v cap_n 4._o inter_fw-la omnes_fw-la sectas_fw-la que_fw-la adhuc_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o fuerunt_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la perniciosior_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quam_fw-la ea_fw-la leonistarum_fw-la idque_fw-la tribus_fw-la de_fw-la causis_fw-la 1._o quia_fw-la est_fw-la diuturnior_fw-la aliqui_fw-la enim_fw-la dicunt_fw-la quod_fw-la duravit_fw-la a_o tempore_fw-la silvestri_n alii_fw-la a_o tempore_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la 2._o quia_fw-la est_fw-la generalior_fw-la fere_n enim_fw-la nulla_fw-la terra_fw-la est_fw-la in_o qua_fw-la haec_fw-la secta_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la 3._o quia_fw-la cum_fw-la omnes_fw-la aliae_fw-la sectae_fw-la immanitate_fw-la blasphemiarum_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la audientibus_fw-la horrorem_fw-la inducant_fw-la haec_fw-la scilicet_fw-la leonistarum_fw-la magna_fw-la habet_fw-la speciem_fw-la pietatis_fw-la eo_fw-la
way_n to_o salvation_n who_o faithful_a professor_n have_v a_o promise_n of_o salvation_n make_v they_o by_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a word_n but_o such_o be_v the_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n religion_n common_o call_v protestant_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o major_n can_v be_v deny_v for_o god_n can_v ●ye_z or_o break_v his_o promise_n and_o the_o minor_n be_v easy_o prove_v by_o part_n our_o religion_n be_v to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god●_n and_o more_o particular_o we_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n ●_o the_o creed_n call_v the_o apostle_n the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o that_o of_o athanasius_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n an●_n we_o confess_v that_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n other_o sacred_a mystery_n may_v be_v call_v sacrament_n we_o believe_v that_o every_o man_n must_v unfeigned_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o t●●●_n from_o it_o to_o god_n and_o love_n god_n above_o all_o and_o 〈◊〉_d neighbour_n as_o himself_o and_o faithful_o obey_v the_o who●●_n reveal_v will_n of_o god_n with_o other_o parcicular_o whic●_n may_v be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o our_o several_a confession_n an●_n he_o that_o faithful_o believe_v and_o do_v all_o this_o have_v m●ny_a promise_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o scripture_n john_n 3.26_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n but_o protestant_n believe_v in_o he_o and_o subvert_v not_o nor_o nullify_v that_o belief_n by_o any_o contradiction_n therefore_o they_o shall_v not_o perish_v if_o they_o be_v true_a to_o their_o profession_n but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n mark_n 16.16_o go_v and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a shall_v b●_n save_v but_o protestant_n believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v obj._n so_o heretic_n and_o wicked_a man_n may_v say_v ans_fw-fr but_o not_o true_o for_o 1._o heretic_n true_o so_o call_v that_o can_v be_v save_v do_v not_o believe_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n which_o be_v fundamental_a or_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n let_v they_o show_v that_o by_o we_o if_o they_o can_v 2._o as_o heretic_n have_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n so_o wicke●_n man_n be_v not_o true_a in_o the_o faith_n the_o former_a want_n the_o fides_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o qua_fw-la both_o that_o be_v both_o true_a objectiuè_n and_o subjective_a faith_n and_o the_o late_a want_n true_a subjective_n faith_n at_o least_o and_o so_o they_o will_v confe●●_n that_o many_o a_o pope_n have_v do_v rom._n 10.9_o if_o thou_o confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n ●aised_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o ●ith_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v to_o righteousness_n and_o ●ith_v the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v unto_o salvation_n ●ut_v thus_o do_v the_o protestant_n therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v ●●ved_v the_o doctrine_n which_o peter_n preach_v to_o cornelius_n as_o sufficient_a to_o save_v he_o and_o all_o his_o house_n act._n 10.14_o ●ut_fw-la every_o word_n of_o that_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o protestant_n ●●erefore_o it_o may_v save_v they_o the_o jailor_n be_v promise_v act._n 16.31_o that_o if_o he_o ●●ll_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o shall_v be_v sau●●_n so_o heb._n 10.39_o luk._n 8.12_o it_o be_v not_o say_v if_o ●●ou_o will_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n of_o rome●●ou_n ●●ou_z shall_v be_v save_v act._n 4.12_o neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n ●●der_a heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v ●●ved_v therefore_o not_o the_o pope_n name_n in_o act._n 15.1_o ●●s_o say_v that_o certain_a man_n come_v down_o from_o judaea●●●ught_v ●●●ught_z the_o brethren_n that_o except_o they_o be_v circum●●sed_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o moses_n they_o can_v not_o be_v ●●ved_v against_o these_o paul_n write_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ●●latians_n where_o you_o may_v see_v how_o to_o think_v of_o such_o ●nd_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n do_v the_o papist_n teach_v man_n that_o ●●cept_v they_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o except_o ●●ey_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o that_o image_n may_v be_v worship_v and_o that_o the_o consecrate_a ●●st_n may_v be_v adore_v and_o that_o we_o may_v pray_v to_o ●●ints_n depart_v and_o that_o the_o priest_n must_v take_v the_o sacrament_n while_o the_o people_n only_o look_v on_o and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o priest_n must_v receive_v it_o in_o both_o kind_n and_o the_o ●ead_a alone_o may_v serve_v the_o people_n and_o that_o prayer_n and_o other_o church-service_n shall_v be_v in_o th●_n latin_a tongue_n when_o the_o people_n understand_v it_o not_o with_o abundance_n more_o of_o their_o vile_a invention_n i_o say_v those_o that_o believe_v not_o all_o this_o they_o say_v cann●●_n be_v save_v but_o what_o say_v the_o apostle_n elder_n an●_n brethren_n at_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o former_a case_n ●_o bring_v before_o they_o they_o will_v not_o have_v i_o tempt_v god_n by_o put_v a_o yoke_n on_o the_o most_o of_o th●_n disciple_n but_o believe_v that_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o th●_n lord_n jesus_n christ_n those_o that_o use_v none_o of_o th●_n ceremony_n shall_v be_v save_v as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n ver●_n 10_o 11._o and_o the_o sum_n of_o their_o decree_n or_o answer_n be_v that_o those_o man_n who_o go_v out_o from_o they_o and_o troubled_a people_n with_o such_o word_n do_v but_o subvert_a the●_n soul_n by_o say_v that_o they_o must_v be_v circumcise_v a●_n keep_v the_o law_n and_o that_o they_o give_v they_o no_o such_o commandment_n and_o that_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o hol●_n ghost_n and_o they_o to_o lay_v upon_o the_o gentile_n no_o great●●_n burden_n than_o these_o necessary_a thing_n etc._n etc._n the_o papists_n thus_o go_v out_o as_o from_o the_o apostle_n pretend_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o impose_v upon_o the_o who●●_n christian_n world_n a_o multitude_n of_o ceremony_n and_o doctrine_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o ●_o be_v find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n how_o shall_v we_o kno●_n whether_o these_o man_n indeed_o have_v any_o command_n ●_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n for_o any_o such_o course_n why_o 1._o let_v they_o show_v their_o commission_n and_o t●●_n proof_n of_o their_o tradition_n 2._o we_o full_o dispro●●_n they_o from_o the_o apostle_n own_o word_n it_o seem_v go●_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o apostle_n to_o lay_v ●_o the_o gentile_n no_o great_a burden_n than_o the_o ●●cessary_a thing_n here_o name_v and_o by_o these_o they_o m●_n be_v save_v and_o they_o that_o teach_v otherwise_o be_v p●nounced_v by_o they_o subverter_n of_o soul_n that_o have_v ●_o command_v from_o they_o for_o what_o they_o do_v but_o it_o ●emeth_v good_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o faction_n to_o lay_v on_o ●●e_z gentile_a church_n unnecessary_a thing_n and_o mul●●tudes_n of_o they_o pretend_v a_o necessity_n of_o they_o ●hen_o they_o be_v none_o of_o the_o four_o that_o be_v here_o only_o ●ade_v necessary_a by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o be_v so_o make_v by_o ●ny_n other_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o some_o they_o impose_v ●n_v pain_n of_o damnation_n which_o they_o will_v not_o pretend_v ●o_o be_v of_o necessity_n themselves_o by_o proportion_n therefore_o we_o may_v hence_o judge_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v mere_a ●lse_a pretender_n to_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o sub●erters_n of_o soul_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_n may_v be_v sa●ed_v for_o all_o their_o presumptuous_a sentence_n to_o the_o con●●ary_a the_o gospel_n which_o paul_n preach_v to_o the_o corinthians_n and_o which_o they_o receive_v be_v such_o as_o will_v ●●ve_v they_o if_o they_o keep_v it_o in_o memory_n viz._n that_o ●hrist_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n ●nd_v that_o he_o be_v bury_v and_o that_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o ●●ird_n day_n etc._n etc._n as_o paul_n witness_v 1_o cor._n 15.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o ●nd_v the_o corinthian_n by_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o doctrine_n ●ere_z a_o church_n of_o god_n and_o sanctify_a 1_o cor._n 1.1_o 2._o ●ut_fw-la the_o protestant_n believe_v all_o that_o the_o corinthians●●ceived_v ●●ceived_z to_o make_v they_o such_o a_o church_n and_o sancti●●ed_n and_o save_v therefore_o the_o protestant_n be_v so_o ●o_o john_n write_v his_o gospel_n that_o man_n may_v believe_v ●nd_v believe_v may_v have_v life_n joh._n 20.30_o 31._o therefore_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o gospel_n shall_v have_v life_n at_o the_o protestant_n believe_v all_o that_o gospel_n
and_o so_o with_o much_o ado_n escape_v death_n i_o think_v notwithstanding_o the_o escape_v of_o these_o last_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o poison_n be_v no_o safe_a or_o wholesome_a food_n i_o come_v now_o to_o prove_v the_o proposition_n last_o express_v in_o general_a 1._o popery_n be_v no_o way_n to_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n god_n have_v no_o where_o prescribe_v it_o as_o a_o way_n to_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o way_n to_o salvation_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o way_n towards_o damnation_n and_o from_o salvation_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o proof_n of_o all_o together_o shall_v be_v next_o fetch_v from_o some_o general_a reason_n draw_v from_o the_o dangerous_a nature_n of_o popery_n for_o if_o i_o shall_v descend_v to_o every_o particular_a error_n i_o must_v be_v voluminous_a and_o do_v that_o which_o be_v sufficient_o do_v by_o multitude_n already_o arg._n 1._o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o resolve_v into_o it_o be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o call_v popery_n therefore_o for_o the_o minor_a they_o be_v found_v on_o and_o resolve_v into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o at_o least_o his_o council_n this_o the_o papist_n do_v confess_v and_o maintain_v but_o that_o this_o be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n be_v evident_a 1._o in_o that_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o pope_n have_v err_v and_o judicial_o err_v and_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n be_v put_v to_o answer_v to_o no_o less_o than_o forty_o instance_n of_o err_a pope_n and_o how_o shameful_o or_o shameless_o he_o do_v it_o any_o learned_a man_n that_o will_v search_v the_o record_n and_o peruse_v the_o case_n may_v soon_o discover_v 2_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o council_n have_v err_v i_o shall_v not_o now_o intermix_v my_o testimony_n to_o interrupt_v the_o plain_a course_n which_o i_o have_v begin_v but_o rather_o give_v you_o the_o proof_n of_o all_o this_o distinct_o by_o itself_o in_o the_o next_o disputation_n 3._o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v this_o that_o we_o affirm_v i_o mean_v one_o part_n of_o they_o do_v confess_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v as_o the_o french_a and_o the_o other_o the_o italian_n and_o spaniard_n confess_v that_o a_o council_n may_v err_v one_o say_v the_o infallibility_n be_v not_o seat_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o seal_v in_o a_o council_n particular_a or_o general_a of_o which_o see_v bellarmine_n de_fw-fr conciliis_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 10._o &_o 11._o in_o which_o last_o he_o seek_v to_o prove_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v 1._o when_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o pope_n legate_n 2._o and_o when_o they_o consent_v with_o the_o legate_n if_o those_o legate_n do_v cross_v the_o pope_n instruction_n 3._o yea_o if_o the_o legate_n have_v no_o certain_a instruction_n the_o council_n and_o all_o they_o may_v consent_v in_o error_n and_o he_o prove_v the_o two_o former_a by_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o which_o err_v say_v he_o because_o the_o pope_n legate_n follow_v not_o his_o instruction_n the_o three_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n sess_z 2._o which_o together_o with_o the_o pope_n legate_n do_v by_o common_a consent_n decree_n that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o now_o say_v bell●rmine_n be_v judge_v erroneous_a 4._o some_o pope_n themselves_o have_v confess_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o seat_n or_o chief_a subject_n of_o the_o infallibility_n as_o adrian_n the_o six_o who_o have_v write_v his_o judgement_n of_o it_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v out_o of_o council_n and_o in_o my_o opinion_n we_o shall_v do_v the_o pope_n much_o wrong_n if_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v he_o when_o he_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v fallible_a do_v bellarmine_n better_o know_v pope_n adrian's_n understanding_n than_o the_o pope_n know_v his_o own_o sure_o i_o must_v do_v as_o i_o will_v be_v do_v by_o and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o know_v that_o which_o i_o do_v not_o know_v or_o that_o i_o be_o infallible_a when_o i_o know_v myself_o subject_a to_o error_n i_o shall_v confident_o expect_v that_o all_o man_n will_v rather_o believe_v i_o of_o myself_o then_o believe_v another_o of_o i_o that_o speak_v the_o contrary_a and_o so_o will_v i_o believe_v pope_n adrian_n that_o he_o be_v fallible_a but_o of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o next_o disputation_n where_o you_o shall_v have_v full_a proof_n arg._n 2._o if_o popery_n do_v build_v even_o the_o christian_a religion_n itself_o as_o hold_v by_o they_o on_o a_o foundation_n that_o be_v utter_o uncertain_a or_o else_o certain_o false_a then_o be_v it_o no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n for_o it_o will_v extirpate_v christianity_n itself_o but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a as_o i_o shall_v thus_o prove_v 1._o they_o be_v divide_v and_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o even_o their_o great_a learned_a doctor_n about_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o i_o shall_v further_o show_v in_o the_o next_o argument_n they_o believe_v upon_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v what_o that_o church_n be_v 2._o they_o build_v the_o assurance_n of_o their_o faith_n upon_o such_o a_o ground_n as_o none_o of_o the_o common_a people_n no_o nor_o any_o doctor_n in_o the_o world_n can_v have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o therefore_o their_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v uncertain_a to_o manifest_v this_o i_o shall_v review_v one_o leaf_n that_o i_o write_v heretofore_o on_o this_o subject_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o saint_n rest_v it_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n they_o say_v upon_o which_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o church_n authoritative_a affirmation_n they_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o say_v one_o of_o they_o no_o more_o than_o aesop_n fable_n now_o suppose_v they_o be_v agree_v what_o this_o church_n be_v and_o that_o we_o now_o take_v notice_n of_o their_o more_o common_a opinion_n that_o it_o be_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n head_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n approve_v of_o and_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v how_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o of_o we_o that_o live_v at_o a_o distance_n yea_o or_o of_o any_o man_n live_v can_v be_v sure_a and_o sound_a when_o all_o these_o follow_a particular_n must_v be_v first_o know_v before_o we_o can_v have_v such_o assurance_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n this_o power_n of_o judge_v what_o be_v his_o word_n and_o what_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o what_o not_o so_o that_o that_o be_v so_o to_o we_o which_o they_o judge_v so_o or_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n to_o believe_v they_o now_o which_o way_n do_v god_n give_v the_o church_n this_o power_n be_v it_o not_o by_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n in_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o by_o what_o mean_n do_v he_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n in_o such_o determination_n it_o must_v be_v also_o by_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n for_o if_o they_o fly_v to_o universal_a tradition_n and_o natural_a obligation_n they_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n and_o let_v go_v their_o authoritative_a tradition_n and_o obligation_n as_o from_o their_o roman●_n church_n so_o that_o a_o man_n must_v according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n believe_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a have_v give_v power_n to_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o he_o can_v believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v he_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o he_o can_v know_v and_o believe_v it_o here_o be_v one_o of_o the_o impossibility_n that_o lie_v at_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o roman_a way_n of_o faith_n 2._o before_o man_n can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n yea_o or_o their_o suppose_a unwritten_a verity_n infallible_o according_a to_o the_o roman_a way_n of_o believe_v they_o must_v first_o know_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o judgement_n and_o this_o also_o must_v be_v know_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v suppose_v not_o to_o be_v know_v yet_o itself_o 3._o they_o must_v also_o know_v
supplication_n and_o holiness_n within_o he_o and_o have_v know_v by_o experience_n what_o it_o be_v to_o walk_v with_o god_n and_o offer_v he_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o token_n of_o his_o acceptance_n and_o approbation_n arg._n 11._o if_o popery_n be_v maintain_v common_o by_o most_o wicked_a and_o abominable_a mean_n and_o so_o by_o the_o devil_n than_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v too_o true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n i_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o mere_a miscarriage_n of_o some_o of_o their_o party_n but_o of_o the_o pillar_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n be_v support_v which_o that_o it_o be_v by_o abominable_a wickedness_n i_o shal●_n give_v you_o but_o these_o few_o instance_n follow_v 1._o the_o very_a business_n or_o prize_n which_o they_o so_o much_o contend_v for_o be_v pomp_n greatness_n dominion_n yea_o tyranny_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_o pride_n vainglory_n and_o covetousness_n that_o set_v they_o on_o and_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o their_o contest_v what_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o quarrel_n but_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n of_o one_o city_n even_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o ruler_n and_o master_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o all_o prince_n and_o people_n obey_v they_o what_o unprejudiced_a man_n can_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o this_o contest_v be_v tyrannical_a and_o that_o their_o dominion_n be_v their_o religion_n and_o their_o pride_n be_v their_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o question_n be_v but_o that_o which_o one_o will_v think_v christ_n have_v once_o sufficient_o determine_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a do_v not_o christ_n chide_v his_o disciple_n for_o this_o contest_v and_o say_v with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o but_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o better_a way_n to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o as_o flexible_a and_o multiform_a as_o they_o accuse_v it_o to_o be_v then_o by_o make_v it_o so_o to_o themselves_o by_o abusive_a violence_n and_o pervert_v it_o put_v by_o the_o plain_a word_n that_o christ_n can_v speak_v and_o will_v take_v his_o decision_n for_o no_o decision_n when_o it_o make_v against_o the_o decisive_n power_n of_o their_o pope_n 2._o and_o this_o be_v yet_o further_o manifest_a in_o that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o pope_n have_v be_v whoremonger_n murderer_n heretic_n simoniacal_a buy_v the_o popedom_n with_o money_n and_o poison_v one_o another_o to_o obtain_v the_o popedom_n and_o live_v in_o it_o like_a beast_n than_o man_n of_o all_o which_o i_o only_o appeal_v to_o platina_n and_o other_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n 3._o another_o pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o unconscionable_a impiety_n they_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o vile_a sin_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o their_o kingdom_n they_o can_v dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o with_o obligation_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o sovereigns_n with_o league_n of_o peace_n and_o amity_n among_o prince_n yea_o they_o can_v themselves_o actual_o promote_v and_o execute_v the_o most_o abominable_a impiety_n that_o will_v but_o help_v they_o to_o attain_v their_o end_n i_o will_v now_o only_a instance_n in_o that_o which_o be_v fresh_a before_o our_o own_o eye_n in_o england_n the_o papist_n know_v that_o anabaptist_n and_o separatist_n be_v erroneous_a they_o know_v that_o ranter_n and_o quaker_n be_v abominable_a and_o yet_o for_o their_o own_o end_n dare_v they_o here_o in_o england_n put_v on_o the_o vizard_n of_o anabaptist_n and_o quaker_n and_o with_o all_o possible_a subtlety_n and_o zeal_n and_o unwearyedness_n go_v up_o and_o down_o to_o seduce_v the_o people_n to_o be_v anabaptist_n and_o quaker_n as_o they_o do_v a_o while_n ago_o to_o be_v seeker_n if_o not_o infidel_n this_o be_v sufficient_o know_v and_o prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o popish_a pretend_a jew_n that_o turn_v anabaptist_n at_o hexham_n and_o be_v take_v at_o newcastle_n and_o other_o of_o they_o take_v but_o by_o many_o other_o testimony_n some_o upon_o oath_n of_o those_o that_o have_v hear_v such_o confession_n from_o their_o mouth_n and_o many_o have_v know_v they_o in_o the_o quaker_n assembly_n that_o have_v see_v they_o before_o elsewhere_o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o they_o divide_v we_o and_o break_v we_o in_o piece_n and_o steal_v a_o credit_n to_o their_o pretend_a unity_n and_o church_n government_n and_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n from_o our_o ministry_n and_o unsettle_v they_o and_o make_v they_o more_o capable_a and_o receptive_a of_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o that_o they_o may_v make_v other_o abroad_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o run_v mad_a and_o can_v that_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n which_o teach_v man_n to_o do_v such_o abominable_a thing_n or_o be_v that_o like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n that_o must_v be_v thus_o uphold_v be_v that_o person_n guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o dare_v draw_v other_o to_o the_o vile_a blasphemy_n and_o wickedness_n in_o a_o dissemble_a garb_n that_o so_o he_o may_v promote_v his_o own_o cause_n certain_o christ_n need_v not_o such_o hypocrisy_n and_o wickedness_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o it_o seem_v the_o pope_n do_v need_v it_o for_o ●is_n 4._o another_o of_o the_o pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o gross_a and_o impudent_a lie_v do_v i_o not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a i_o dare_v not_o accuse_v they_o of_o it_o i_o will_v give_v you_o but_o these_o three_o instance_n follow_v 1._o they_o do_v raise_v and_o with_o great_a confidence_n propagate_v most_o shameless_a lie_n of_o those_o who_o they_o take_v for_o their_o lead_a adversary_n we_o read_v they_o in_o the_o open_a write_n of_o cochlaeus_fw-la bolse_o staphilu●_n thyraeus_n and_o many_o more_o what_o abominable_a story_n have_v they_o of_o the_o death_n of_o luther_n oecolampadius_n bucer_n calvin_n and_o other_o which_o it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a that_o they_o can_v be_v so_o blind_v with_o mali●e_a as_o to_o believe_v themselves_o what_o conference_n do_v we_o ever_o manage_v with_o they_o which_o they_o do_v not_o misreport_v witness_v the_o late_a ridiculous_a passage_n after_o the_o conference_n between_o fisher_n and_o doctor_n feat_o and_o doctor_n white_a when_o they_o boast_v beyond_o sea_n of_o the_o number_n of_o convert_v and_o in_o particular_a of_o two_o earl_n and_o this_o to_o the_o earl_n of_o warwick_n himself_o not_o know_v he_o who_o be_v feign_v to_o be_v one_o of_o they_o and_o who_o have_v be_v a_o witness_n of_o their_o weakness_n and_o how_o poor_o do_v weston_n in_o his_o pamphlet_n put_v this_o off_o 2._o the_o next_o instance_n i_o will_v give_v be_v their_o abominable_a lie_a legend_n by_o which_o they_o have_v befool_v the_o people_n and_o make_v themselves_o ridiculous_a to_o the_o world_n and_o occasion_v other_o to_o question_v their_o report_n in_o other_o thing_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o some_o of_o they_o as_o doctor_z feat_o have_v gather_v they_o to_o my_o hand_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o foresay_a conference_n yet_o with_o the_o author_n that_o report_v they_o that_o you_o may_v try_v whether_o they_o be_v wrong_v as_o that_o saint_n brigit_fw-la lay_v her_o wimble_a and_o saint_n aldelme_v his_o chesible_a upon_o a_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o support_v they_o vit_fw-mi sanct._n brigit_fw-la &_o vit_fw-mi s._n aldelmi_n that_o saint_n nicolas_n while_o he_o lie_v in_o his_o cradle_n fast_v wednesday_n and_o friday_n these_o day_n he_o will_v suck_v but_o once_o a_o day_n festivale_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it nicol_n that_o saint_n patrick_n cause_v a_o steal_a sheep_n to_o bleat_v in_o the_o belly_n of_o he_o that_o have_v eat_v he_o legend_n de_fw-fr st._n patricio_n that_o the_o corpse_n of_o saint_n laurence_n at_o the_o come_n of_o saint_n stephens●ody_n ●ody_z smile_v for_o joy_n and_o turn_v himself_o to_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o make_v room_n for_o he_o legend_n de_fw-fr s._n steph._n that_o clemens_n write_v a_o letter_n to_o saint_n james_n seven_o year_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a clem._n ep._n ad_fw-la jac._n in_o ep._n pontif._n that_o saint_n denis_n carry_v his_o head_n in_o his_o hand_n three_o mile_n and_o rest_v at_o each_o place_n of_o the_o post_n that_o be_v set_v between_o paris_n and_o saint_n denis_n breu._n &_o pictur_n diony_n that_o saint_n dunstane_n hold_v the_o devil_n fast_o by_o the_o nose_n with_o a_o pair_n of_o tongue_n leg._n de_fw-fr dunst_n that_o the_o chamber_n of_o our_o lady_n be_v carry_v by_o angel_n through_o the_o air_n from_o palestine_n to_o loretto_n in_o italy_n hist_o de_fw-fr nostre_fw-fr dame_n de_fw-fr lor●tto_n that_o our_o lady_n help_v saint_n thomas_n becket_n to_o mend_v or_o
ground_n of_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n or_o of_o our_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n n._n have_v already_o inquire_v whether_o the_o romanist_n or_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v in_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n we_o shall_v now_o more_o particular_o inquire_v whether_o their_o faith_n or_o we_o be_v build_v on_o the_o sure_a ground_n our_o belief_n be_v thus_o resolve_v we_o believe_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a because_o the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o we_o discern_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o both_o by_o his_o intrinsicke_a and_o extrinsicke_a seal_n or_o attestation_n of_o it_o in_o that_o it_o bear_v his_o image_n and_o superscription_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o undoubted_a uncontrole_v miracle_n and_o other_o effect_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o cause_n the_o reveal_n contain_v sign_n or_o character_n be_v the_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o these_o book_n be_v write_v by_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n and_o be_v uncorrupted_a in_o the_o main_a we_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o by_o the_o evident_a certainty_n of_o the_o historical_a attestation_n and_o tradition_n for_o we_o depend_v not_o bare_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o a_o deceivable_a or_o deceitful_a man_n such_o as_o be_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o any_o fallible_a society_n of_o man_n but_o on_o such_o history_n as_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o plain_a reason_n to_o be_v infallible_a contain_v in_o it_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o party_n the_o same_o testimony_n also_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o very_a heretic_n who_o be_v enemy_n to_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o enough_o also_o even_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o infidel_n to_o confirm_v we_o so_o that_o by_o this_o infallible_a history_n and_o universal_a tradition_n we_o have_v a_o full_a discovery_n that_o these_o book_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n then_o we_o have_v that_o the_o statute_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n james_n or_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v and_o to_o a_o man_n that_o hear_v not_o god_n himself_o or_o the_o lord_n jesus_n or_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v not_o their_o immediate_a inspiration_n we_o know_v not_o how_o the_o law_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v more_o fit_o deliver_v in_o a_o ordinary_a rational_a way_n nor_o what_o sure_a other_n mean_v such_o as_o we_o can_v expect_v who_o live_v at_o such_o a_o distance_n from_o the_o first_o receiver_n of_o it_o unless_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o speak_v to_o every_o man_n as_o he_o do_v to_o moses_n or_o have_v christ_n or_o apostles_n still_o among_o we_o or_o unless_o god_n must_v make_v we_o all_o prophet_n by_o his_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n and_o last_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o word_n we_o understand_v as_o we_o do_v the_o meaning_n of_o other_o law_n or_o write_n have_v moreover_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v necessary_a because_o of_o the_o sublimity_n and_o spirituality_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o great_a effect_n upon_o our_o heart_n our_o teacher_n by_o translation_n and_o further_a instruction_n be_v our_o helper_n as_o they_o must_v be_v in_o other_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v learn_v and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o they_o without_o and_o of_o the_o spirit_n within_o we_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n especial_o compare_v text_n with_o text_n and_o so_o receive_v the_o sanctify_a impress_n upon_o our_o heart_n and_o thus_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o reform_a catholic_a resolve_v he_o receive_v the_o bible_n from_o the_o hand_n or_o mouth_n of_o his_o teacher_n and_o perhaps_o first_o believe_v they_o fide_fw-la humana_fw-la that_o it_o be_v god_n word_n he_o know_v that_o this_o book_n be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o infallible_a history_n or_o universal_a tradition_n he_o know_v that_o they_o do_v it_o by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o he_o find_v on_o it_o and_o by_o the_o uncontrole_v miracle_n by_o which_o they_o seal_v it_o he_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a because_o it_o thus_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o be_v most_o true_a of_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n see_v l._n du_fw-fr plessis_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 4._o translat_fw-la pag._n 121.122_o 123._o and_o conradus_n bergius_n prax._n cathol_n can._n p._n 208.209_o 210._o disp_n 2._o §_o 125_o 126._o to_o this_o same_o sense_n vid._n &_o sibrand_n lubbert_n princip_n christ_n dogm_n li._n 1._o pag._n 20_o etc._n etc._n what_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v the_o question_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o discuss_v do_v intimate_v in_o part_n for_o it_o can_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o one_o proposition_n because_o they_o be_v of_o so_o many_o mind_n themselves_o indeed_o we_o may_v see_v in_o this_o their_o foundation_n that_o popery_n be_v a_o very_a maze_n and_o dungeon_n for_o the_o builder_n of_o this_o babel_n be_v all_o in_o confusion_n at_o the_o lay_n of_o their_o first_o stone_n yet_o this_o much_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o agree_v in_o 2._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o duty_n 3._o but_o not_o the_o whole_a rule_n nor_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v the_o other_o part_n 8._o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v god_n word_n after_o a_o sort_n as_o they_o speak_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v its_o authority_n in_o itself_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a truth_n but_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la as_o to_o we_o it_o have_v its_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o act_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o unwritten_a part_n of_o god_n word_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o a_o divine_a revelation_n biblia_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o judge_v both_o of_o this_o tradition_n and_o the_o scripture_n as_o also_o to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n and_o to_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o church_n must_v be_v one_o only_o visible_a infallible_a authorize_v thus_o to_o judge_v by_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v only_o the_o roman_a church_n thus_o far_o the_o most_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v agree_v but_o when_o these_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n come_v to_o be_v open_v they_o fall_v all_o to_o piece_n for_o 1._o sometime_o they_o say_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n word_n after_o a_o sort_n sometime_o that_o it_o be_v some_o middle_a thing_n between_o a_o testimony_n divine_a and_o humane_a 3._o 2._o and_o what_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o a_o mind_n whether_o it_o be_v only_o the_o prime_a truth_n or_o whether_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o material_a object_n be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a but_o i_o confess_v this_o controversy_n be_v more_o verbal_a than_o real_a 3._o ●1_n and_o what_o place_n here_o to_o assign_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o agree_v neither_o etc._n 4._o especial_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o the_o main_a viz._n what_o this_o church_n be_v which_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n and_o into_o who_o judgement_n their_o faith_n be_v resolve_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n or_o the_o former_a church_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n only_o at_o least_o in_o case_n of_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o his_o council_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n agree_v not_o as_o the_o french_a and_o venetian_n say_v waldensem_fw-la yea_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n only_o or_o the_o laity_n also_o that_o be_v this_o church_n nay_o some_o of_o they_o plead_v universal_a tradition_n as_o holden_n white_n vane_n and_o divers_a other_o englishman_n of_o late_a as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o roman_a tradition_n or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o and_o ordinary_o they_o use_v to_o tell_v we_o of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o to_o mouth_n it_o in_o such_o swell_a word_n that_o the_o simple_a hearer_n will_v little_o think_v that_o by_o all_o the_o church_n they_o mean_v but_o one_o man_n or_o at_o the_o
and_o many_o thousand_o more_o therefore_o those_o past_a miracle_n shall_v prove_v all_o bishop_n infallible_a that_o succeed_v they_o 2._o quest_n i_o desire_v also_o to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v your_o pope_n himself_o that_o work_v these_o miracle_n or_o some_o other_o person_n and_o if_o other_o whether_o it_o be_v only_o some_o of_o your_o church_n or_o all_o if_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n himself_o why_o then_o have_v we_o more_o murder_n than_o miracle_n charge_v on_o your_o pope_n by_o your_o own_o historian_n and_o why_o will_v not_o his_o holiness_n do_v some_o miracle_n in_o charity_n to_o poor_a heretic_n why_o do_v you_o boast_v no_o more_o of_o you_o pope_n miracle_n one_o i_o confess_v we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o golden_a legend_n that_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o woman_n kiss_v his_o hand_n be_v so_o vehement_o tempt_v with_o lust_n that_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o cut_v his_o hand_n off_o but_o the_o virgin_n mary_n have_v compassion_n on_o he_o join_v his_o hand_n to_o his_o body_n again_o but_o this_o be_v no_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v saint_n becket_n and_o saint_n brigit_fw-la and_o saint_n katherine_n that_o you_o send_v we_o to_o for_o miracle_n and_o not_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o i_o will_v further_o know_v whether_o one_o man_n miracle_n will_v prove_v another_o man_n infallible_a unless_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o assertion_n of_o that_o other_o man_n infallibility_n it_o shall_v rather_o prove_v saint_n brigit_fw-la and_o saint_n katherine_n infallible_a that_o be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o revelation_n and_o miracle_n than_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v none_o will_v it_o prove_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n infallible_a if_o any_o one_o that_o be_v under_o his_o government_n shall_v work_v a_o miracle_n or_o be_v you_o sure_a that_o there_o be_v no_o miracle_n wrought_v among_o the_o grecian_n abassine_n or_o armenian_n moreover_o if_o you_o be_v all_o miracle_n worker_n why_o can_v we_o never_o see_v one_o nor_o have_v certain_a proof_n of_o one_o but_o if_o it_o be_v but_o some_o very_a few_o of_o you_o as_o good_a as_o none_o how_o will_v that_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o your_o whole_a church_n when_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v miracle_n that_o prove_v their_o own_o infallibility_n but_o that_o prove_v not_o the_o infallibility_n of_o all_o in_o the_o church_n nor_o of_o every_o teacher_n in_o it_o nor_o of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o they_o 3._o quest_n if_o your_o pope_n and_o church_n be_v prove_v infallible_a by_o such_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v do_v it_o not_o follow_v then_o that_o all_o your_o pope_n be_v inspire_v person_n or_o prophet_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v by_o which_o the_o gift_n of_o infallibility_n be_v convey_v to_o they_o 4._o quest_n yea_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o all_o your_o church_n be_v inspire_v prophet_n if_o all_o your_o church_n be_v thus_o infallible_a but_o you_o can_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v too_o easy_o believe_v these_o if_o you_o have_v apostolic_a infallibility_n ground_v on_o the_o like_a miracle_n then_o must_v you_o not_o be_v each_o one_o dis-junct_o infallible_a as_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o not_o only_o altogether_o 5._o quest_n and_o be_v it_o not_o plain_a then_o that_o all_o your_o dictate_v be_v god_n word_n if_o you_o have_v the_o same_o seal_n and_o inspiration_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v and_o so_o your_o pope_n at_o least_o if_o not_o each_o one_o of_o you_o must_v make_v we_o new_a revelation_n or_o new_a scripture_n and_o be_v not_o this_o heinous_a arrogancy_n thus_o to_o equal_v yourselves_o with_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n when_o you_o be_v none_o they_o can_v but_o be_v infallible_a and_o so_o you_o say_v be_v the_o pope_n they_o can_v but_o seal_v their_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n and_o so_o you_o say_v do_v your_o church_n 6._o quest_n will_v you_o grant_v that_o we_o be_v all_o infallible_a here_o in_o england_n if_o we_o can_v prove_v any_o miracle_n do_v among_o we_o and_o by_o we_o 7._o quest_n be_v it_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o miracle_n that_o it_o be_v not_o control_v by_o some_o great_a miracle_n or_o evidence_n otherwise_o the_o magician_n in_o egypt_n and_o ●imon_n magus_n may_v have_v go_v away_o with_o better_a reputation_n but_o your_o pretend_a miracle_n be_v control_v by_o far_o great_a and_o sure_a and_o therefore_o of_o no_o force_n for_o you_o be_v to_o confirm_v a_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o many_o sure_a miracle_n this_o we_o be_v still_o ready_a to_o prove_v though_o here_o we_o take_v it_o for_o certain_a but_o you_o use_v to_o decline_v that_o trial_n 8._o quest_n be_v not_o every_o priest_n infallible_a and_o every_o church_n that_o have_v the_o eucharist_n according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n for_o sure_a transubstantiation_n be_v a_o miracle_n i_o do_v not_o think_v you_o will_v deny_v it_o and_o a_o priest_n even_o in_o deadly_a sin_n may_v be_v a_o instrument_n of_o this_o miracle_n if_o your_o church_n be_v infallible_a be_v there_o then_o no_o eucharist_n among_o the_o abassine_n greek_n or_o any_o that_o subject_n not_o to_o you_o or_o be_v they_o all_o infallible_a and_o if_o miracle_n be_v as_o common_a as_o transubstantiation_n the_o privilege_n prove_v by_o they_o must_v be_v as_o common_a so_o much_o to_o master_n knot_n first_o proof_n of_o his_o infallibility_n without_o scripture_n his_o second_o independent_a proof_n be_v sanctity_n but_o sir_n 1._o be_v all_o saint_n infallible_a sure_o you_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o 2._o will_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o man_n as_o saint_n francis_n or_o saint_n dominicke_n prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v no_o sanctity_n by_o what_o mean_n rather_o if_o saint_n be_v infallible_a a_o murder_v simoniacal_a drunken_a fornicate_a pope_n as_o you_o confess_v many_o of_o they_o be_v be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v infallible_a especial_o saint_n brigit_fw-la can_v make_v the_o pope_n infallible_a by_o that_o sanctity_n that_o will_v not_o make_v or_o prove_v herself_o infallible_a 3._o who_o must_v be_v judge_n of_o your_o sanctity_n and_o we_o yourselves_o no_o doubt_n for_o my_o part_n if_o my_o salvation_n lie_v whole_o upon_o the_o pass_n of_o a_o righteous_a censure_n between_o we_o in_o this_o point_n i_o must_v needs_o profess_v that_o even_o in_o england_n where_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v of_o their_o best_a sort_n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o common_a way_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o a_o discountenanced_a way_n and_o where_o they_o be_v but_o few_o yet_o i_o have_v know_v so_o few_o of_o they_o that_o have_v not_o be_v common_a swearer_n curser_n drunkard_n whoremonger_n or_o the_o like_a and_o yet_o few_o that_o ever_o manifest_v any_o serious_a mind_v of_o god_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v or_o any_o experience_n of_o the_o work_n of_o sanctification_n on_o their_o heart_n and_o who_o show_v any_o more_o holiness_n than_o what_o say_v in_o certain_a ceremony_n word_n gesture_n or_o other_o formality_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_n i_o know_v so_o many_o protestant_n of_o heavenly_a heart_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v judge_v and_o obedient_a life_n that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n in_o my_o most_o impartial_a judgement_n between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n in_o matter_n of_o holiness_n if_o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o proof_n of_o infallibility_n sure_a god_n will_v excuse_v i_o if_o i_o take_v england_n to_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o rome_n because_o he_o require_v i_o not_o to_o put_v out_o my_o eye_n nor_o to_o say_v the_o swan_n be_v black_a and_o the_o crow_n white_a because_o the_o pope_n shall_v say_v so_o before_o i_o and_o yet_o we_o still_o disclaim_v all_o pretence_n to_o such_o infallibility_n the_o three_o mark_n that_o knot_n bring_v be_v their_o suffering_n but_o 1._o sure_o the_o pope_n suffer_v but_o little_a in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o next_o let_v he_o look_v to_o himself_o how_o then_o do_v other_o man_n suffering_n prove_v he_o infallible_a 2._o do_v not_o the_o poor_a greek_a church_n and_o other_o christian_n under_o the_o turk_n suffer_v more_o than_o the_o romanist_n 3._o do_v they_o not_o make_v we_o suffer_v incomparable_o more_o than_o they_o be_v it_o not_o impudence_n almost_o inhuman_a after_o the_o murder_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o albigenses_n waldenses_n bohemian_n after_o the_o massacre_n in_o france_n savoy_n ireland_n the_o burn_n in_o england_n the_o powder-plot_n after_o their_o bloody_a inquisition_n of_o so_o long_a continuance_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o kind_n to_o tell_v the_o remnant_n of_o their_o survive_a neighbour_n that_o their_o suffering_n prove_v they_o
speak_v against_o his_o own_o heart_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v nor_o sound_o imagine_v 2._o the_o infallible_a dictate_v of_o the_o pope_n while_o he_o err_v in_o mind_n shall_v be_v all_o either_o unreasonable_a act_n as_o be_v the_o word_n of_o one_o that_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v or_o interpretative_o lie_v for_o when_o a_o man_n speak_v contrary_a to_o his_o judgement_n if_o his_o word_n be_v true_a in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v interpretative_o lie_v because_o he_o so_o take_v they_o and_o intend_v they_o as_o falsehood_n to_o deceive_v other_o for_o instance_n if_o pope_n john_n the_o 23._o that_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o general_n council_n upon_o article_n exhibit_v against_o he_o for_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v with_o his_o tongue_n have_v teach_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o have_v be_v as_o lie_v to_o he_o though_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v most_o true_a and_o we_o must_v have_v a_o promise_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o clergy_n among_o all_o the_o liar_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a infallible_a liar_n a_o happy_a generation_n of_o liar_n sure_a but_o where_o be_v that_o promise_n 3._o it_o be_v for_o the_o error_n of_o the_o tongue_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o mind_n that_o the_o clergy_n dispose_v liberius_n &_o felix_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n constance_n and_o basil_n depose_v the_o other_o pope_n above_o mention_v for_o 1._o they_o can_v not_o know_v their_o mind_n but_o by_o their_o word_n 2._o they_o charge_v they_o with_o the_o error_n of_o their_o tongue_n as_o well_o as_o mind_n argu._n 10._o if_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o the_o matter_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o than_o it_o must_v be_v by_o enthusiasm_n or_o prophetical_a inspiration_n but_o all_o pope_n be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n and_o some_o more_o notorious_o ignorant_a and_o yet_o neither_o alderman_n nor_o any_o of_o they_o for_o aught_o be_v ever_o prove_v be_v prophet_n or_o divine_o inspire_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a for_o the_o major_a its_o plain_a that_o as_o no_o err_a man_n must_v speak_v against_o his_o own_o mind_n if_o he_o be_v infallible_a so_o a_o ignorant_a man_n in_o those_o point_n must_v 1._o either_o have_v his_o ignorance_n cure_v sudden_o by_o prophetical_a inspiration_n or_o else_o 2._o must_v speak_v as_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n without_o or_o beside_o his_o own_o mind_n there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n imaginable_a and_o as_o for_o the_o minor_a i_o prove_v both_o part_n of_o it_o 1._o that_o pope_n be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n i_o prove_v thus_o 1._o they_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n for_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n all_o that_o be_v therein_o reveal_v be_v divine_a truth_n but_o pope_n have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o need_v not_o sure_o stand_v to_o prove_v the_o minor_a for_o they_o confess_v it_o themselves_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n understand_v all_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v sure_o the_o most_o damnable_a sinner_n in_o the_o world_n for_o not_o reveal_v his_o knowledge_n to_o other_o 2._o yea_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v so_o notorious_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a that_o their_o own_o alphonsus_n a_o castro_n say_v advers._fw-la hare_n li._n 1._o c._n 4._o that_o it_o be_v certain_a some_o pope_n be_v so_o unlearned_a that_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o grammar_n and_o sure_a if_o they_o that_o understand_v not_o any_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a which_o be_v the_o language_n in_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v no_o nor_o the_o latin_a grammar_n shall_v understand_v all_o the_o bible_n and_o err_v in_o nothing_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v by_o a_o miracle_n and_o by_o prophetical_a inspiration_n 2._o but_o that_o all_o pope_n be_v not_o inspire_v prophet_n nor_o illuminate_v by_o miracle_n i_o will_v leave_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o read_v platina_n stella_n yea_o or_o baronius_n himself_o or_o if_o they_o have_v any_o other_o that_o be_v a_o more_o notorious_a parasite_n to_o they_o and_o let_v they_o be_v judge_n argu._n 11._o if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v infallible_a than_o it_o be_v either_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v or_o but_o in_o some_o if_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v believe_v or_o decide_v then_o will_v it_o follow_v 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o most_o cruel_o wicked_a man_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o church_n that_o will_v suffer_v the_o church_n to_o lie_v in_o so_o much_o ignorance_n and_o contention_n and_o will_v not_o reveal_v the_o truth_n to_o reconcile_v and_o enlighten_v they_o why_o do_v he_o not_o write_v a_o infallible_a commentary_n on_o all_o the_o bible_n to_o perfect_v our_o knowledge_n and_o end_n all_o our_o quarrel_n and_o why_o do_v he_o not_o write_v a_o infallible_a summary_n of_o all_o his_o superadded_a tradition_n have_v not_o christ_n tell_v he_o that_o no_o man_n light_v a_o candle_n to_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o where_o it_o may_v be_v see_v of_o all_o 2._o why_o do_v not_o one_o pope_n reveal_v that_o which_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o reveal_v but_o leave_v it_o to_o successor_n one_o after_o another_o to_o do_v it_o by_o degree_n dare_v they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o necessary_a to_o this_o age_n to_o know_v which_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o last_o or_o former_a age_n 3._o why_o do_v so_o many_o of_o themselves_o yea_o their_o general_a council_n so_o much_o contradict_v their_o pope_n in_o many_o thing_n if_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o all_o of_o they_o confess_v that_o either_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n may_v err_v but_o if_o it_o be_v but_o some_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o then_o how_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a which_o be_v those_o some_o can_v we_o know_v before_o he_o disclose_v they_o or_o only_o after_o i_o suppose_v they_o will_v say_v it_o be_v in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o determine_v or_o declare_v but_o if_o that_o be_v the_o rule_n to_o know_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o infallibility_n by_o then_o i_o every_o pope_n begin_v to_o be_v infallible_a when_o he_o begin_v to_o determine_v or_o declare_v and_o not_o before_o 2._o and_o then_o every_o pope_n increase_v in_o his_o infallibility_n as_o he_o increase_v his_o decretal_n or_o canon_n 3._o and_o then_o one_o pope_n be_v much_o more_o infallible_a than_o other_o who_o have_v make_v more_o decree_n than_o other_o 4._o and_o then_o some_o pope_n be_v never_o infallible_a who_o never_o make_v any_o decree_n or_o determination_n or_o exposition_n at_o all_o so_o that_o their_o cause_n be_v lose_v if_o their_o actual_a discovery_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o infallibility_n and_o yet_o i_o can_v imagine_v what_o else_o they_o can_v say_v that_o may_v have_v any_o appearance_n of_o consist_v with_o their_o interest_n for_o it_o be_v either_o a_o positive_a or_o a_o negative_a infallibility_n which_o they_o mean_v and_o ascribe_v to_o their_o church_n if_o a_o positive_a then_o 1._o all_o the_o foresay_a absurdity_n unavoidable_o follow_v whether_o they_o say_v that_o they_o can_v infallible_o teach_v we_o all_o thing_n and_o will_v not_o or_o but_o some_o but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o negative_a infallibility_n which_o they_o maintain_v viz._n that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o teach_v any_o false_a doctrine_n or_o the_o pope_n shall_v never_o deceive_v we_o by_o obtrude_a any_o error_n though_o withal_o he_o may_v possible_o teach_v we_o but_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n yea_o the_o necessary_a truth_n yea_o perhaps_o teach_v we_o none_o at_o all_o i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v their_o meaning_n than_o every_o infant_n or_o bird_n or_o beast_n have_v as_o glorious_a a_o privilege_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o every_o infant_n and_o bruit_n be_v so_o infallible_a that_o we_o be_v certain_a they_o will_v not_o deceive_v the_o church_n by_o teach_v any_o error_n perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v positive_o infallible_a as_o a_o sufficient_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la at_o that_o time_n or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o negative_o infallible_a in_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v not_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o necessary_a to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o either_o such_o point_n be_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la and_o
necessary_a before_o the_o pope_n dedeclare_v they_o so_o and_o he_o therefore_o declare_v they_o so_o because_o they_o be_v so_o or_o else_o he_o declare_v they_o de_fw-la fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a before_o they_o be_v so_o that_o by_o declare_v they_o so_o he_o may_v make_v they_o so_o if_o the_o first_o 1._o then_o the_o papist_n have_v lose_v their_o cause_n for_o that_o be_v it_o which_o they_o deny_v at_o lest_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la though_o not_o in_o se_fw-la as_o they_o use_v to_o distinguish_v 2._o and_o then_o its_o plain_a that_o no_o pope_n have_v be_v positive_o infallible_a in_o necessariis_fw-la or_o all_o point_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la for_o no_o one_o have_v declare_v all_o nor_o be_v they_o yet_o all_o say_v they_o declare_v by_o they_o but_o every_o pope_n may_v still_o add_v more_o and_o who_o know_v when_o we_o shall_v have_v all_o but_o if_o they_o take_v the_o late_a way_n than_o 1._o they_o suppose_v that_o god_n word_n how_o express_a soever_o do_v not_o make_v a_o point_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a till_o the_o pope_n declare_v it_o so_o at_o lest_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la and_o how_o it_o can_v be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a any_o other_o way_n than_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la they_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o declare_v for_o that_o which_o be_v credendum_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la aliquo_fw-la credendum_fw-la that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v must_v be_v believe_v by_o some_o body_n and_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a be_v necessary_a to_o some_o one_o so_o that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v no_o gospel_n with_o they_o nor_o the_o law_n of_o god_n any_o law_n though_o we_o read_v it_o and_o hear_v it_o a_o thousand_o time_n till_o the_o pope_n tell_v we_o by_o parcel_n the_o meaning_n of_o its_o particular_a word_n and_o sentence_n 2._o they_o make_v the_o pope_n act_n to_o go_v before_o their_o object_n which_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o action_n while_o they_o make_v he_o to_o declare_v a_o point_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la that_o it_o may_v become_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la for_o to_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v so_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o not_o only_o that_o it_o will_v or_o shall_v be_v so_o de_fw-mi futuro_fw-la 3._o and_o so_o they_o make_v all_o the_o pope_n infallible_a declaration_n exposition_n and_o determination_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la to_o be_v lie_n for_o if_o he_o declare_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v necessary_a before_o it_o be_v necessary_a or_o declare_v this_o or_o that_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n before_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la before_o it_o be_v so_o what_o be_v this_o but_o plain_o lie_v but_o if_o they_o say_v that_o he_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o necessary_a only_o for_o the_o future_a and_o not_o to_o have_v be_v so_o before_o this_o declaration_n than_o the_o forementioned_a absurdity_n fall_v upon_o they_o and_o also_o 1._o the_o pope_n be_v then_o a_o gospel-maker_n and_o the_o law_n giver_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o spiritual_n and_o internal_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v he_o that_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v the_o legislative_a power_n and_o without_o who_o nothing_o that_o christ_n have_v say_v shall_v bind_v we_o 2._o then_o the_o church_n faith_n be_v mutable_a and_o in_o a_o continual_a change_n by_o new_a addition_n for_o the_o decree_n or_o exposition_n of_o every_o pope_n do_v make_v more_o article_n of_o faith_n than_o be_v before_o 3._o then_o the_o present_a papist_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o their_o forefather_n or_o their_o forefather_n not_o of_o the_o same_o with_o they_o nor_o do_v they_o go_v to_o heaven_n by_o the_o same_o way_n for_o according_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n if_o the_o present_a age_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o believe_v as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la many_o thing_n more_o than_o the_o former_a age_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o can_v be_v save_v 4._o and_o then_o it_o be_v evident_a unmercifulness_n in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v more_o exposition_n decree_n or_o determination_n and_o so_o to_o make_v we_o of_o this_o age_n so_o much_o work_v to_o do_v before_o we_o can_v get_v to_o heaven_n and_o escape_v damnation_n which_o our_o forefather_n never_o have_v to_o do_v i_o know_v falkland_n one_o of_o they_o reply_v to_o this_o that_o these_o addition_n be_v no_o cruelty_n because_o they_o make_v not_o salvation_n more_o difficult_a but_o facilitate_v that_o which_o be_v necessary_a before_o or_o to_o that_o sense_n but_o 1._o it_o seem_v then_o that_o somewhat_o be_v necessary_a and_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la before_o the_o pope_n define_v determine_v or_o declare_v they_o so_o by_o that_o time_n we_o be_v plain_o tell_v which_o those_o point_n be_v the_o papist_n that_o undertake_v and_o perform_v it_o will_v find_v himself_o at_o a_o sad_a loss_n 2._o but_o be_v this_o man_n serious_a do_v he_o think_v indeed_o that_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o believe_v the_o apostle_n creed_n than_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n basil_n constance_n lateran_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o all_o the_o decretal_n both_o the_o pope_n and_o isidore_n meccator_n alius_fw-la peccator_fw-la for_o instance_n before_o the_o pope_n determine_v the_o other_o day_n for_o the_o molinist_n against_o some_o part_n of_o the_o dominican_n jansenian_a doctrine_n both_o party_n may_v have_v go_v to_o heaven_n but_o now_o the_o poor_a dominican_n must_v change_v part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n or_o go_v to_o hell_n fire_n i_o demand_v now_o whether_o the_o pope_n determination_n have_v not_o make_v salvation_n hard_a to_o many_o then_o before_o i_o appeal_v to_o all_o the_o thomist_n dominican_n jansenian_o whether_o the_o pope_n have_v facilitated_a their_o salvation_n by_o this_o determination_n i_o appeal_v to_o tho._n whites_n friendly_a combat_n with_o francisc_n macedo_n &_o to_o the_o late_a animadversion_n of_o the_o french_a doctor_n on_o the_o pope_n determination_n further_o i_o add_v that_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n positive_a be_v only_o in_o point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n than_o many_o a_o private_a doctor_n nay_o every_o christian_a man_n or_o woman_n be_v at_o present_a as_o infallible_a as_o the_o pope_n for_o it_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a and_o not_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o de_fw-mi praesenti_fw-la &_o in_fw-la sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la but_o de_fw-la futuro_fw-la &_o in_fw-la sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la that_o they_o mean_v it_o that_o be_v that_o another_o man_n may_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v 1._o clean_n contrary_a we_o maintain_v and_o the_o papist_n confess_v that_o no_o elect_a person_n shall_v fall_v quite_o from_o the_o faith_n 2._o but_o a_o reprobate_a pope_n may_v witness_n john_n 23._o and_o many_o another_o so_o much_o for_o that_o argument_n argu._n 12._o if_o every_o pope_n be_v infallible_a positive_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o expound_v all_o scripture_n than_o all_o pope_n be_v of_o equal_a understanding_n and_o fidelity_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n for_o the_o most_o learned_a wise_a and_o pious_a can_v go_v no_o high_o but_o to_o be_v able_a infallible_o to_o interpret_v all_o scripture_n and_o declare_v all_o god_n will_v concern_v our_o faith_n and_o duty_n but_o sure_a all_o pope_n be_v not_o equal_a none_o of_o those_o child_n or_o dunce_n that_o alphonsus_n a_o castro_n say_v understand_v not_o the_o grammar_n be_v equal_a to_o pius_n 2._o or_o adrian_n the_o 6._o argu._n 13._o if_o every_o pope_n be_v infallible_a then_o study_v learning_n consultation_n yea_o and_o council_n be_v needless_a for_o the_o most_o unlearned_a pope_n be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o after_o all_o the_o study_n in_o the_o world_n consultation_n and_o advice_n of_o general_n council_n he_o can_v he_o but_o infallible_a and_o so_o say_v they_o he_o be_v before_o if_o they_o say_v still_o that_o before_o he_o be_v but_o negative_o infallible_a i_o say_v again_o so_o be_v a_o block_n a_o infant_n or_o a_o idiot_n but_o that_o study_v learning_n consultation_n and_o council_n be_v not_o needless_a i_o suppose_v all_o papist_n will_v grant_v therefore_o they_o must_v grant_v that_o all_o pope_n be_v not_o infallible_a argu._n 14._o notorious_a ungodly_a man_n that_o live_v in_o murder_n fornication_n incest_n sodomy_n blasphemy_n etc._n etc._n have_v no_o promise_n from_o god_n nor_o any_o other_o assurance_n of_o infallibility_n but_o such_o be_v many_o pope_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o major_n i_o prove_v from_o many_o scripture_n 2_o thess_n 2.10_o 11._o
successor_n for_o they_o must_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o cause_n if_o they_o will_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o effect_n argu._n 17._o if_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a than_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a but_o the_o papist_n say_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a therefore_o according_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a the_o argument_n be_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la and_o the_o antecedent_n their_o own_o all_o the_o doubt_n be_v of_o the_o consequence_n which_o i_o prove_v thus_o either_o it_o be_v the_o real_a or_o representative_a body_n which_o they_o must_v call_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o both_o these_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n therefore_o 1._o for_o the_o real_a no_o man_n can_v possible_o know_v all_o their_o mind_n nor_o ever_o expect_v that_o they_o shall_v in_o this_o life_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o major_a part_n that_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n to_o as_o its_o usual_a in_o all_o such_o body_n or_o assembly_n now_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n be_v and_o have_v be_v against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n that_o it_o be_v so_o now_o be_v well_o know_v see_v all_o the_o greek_n abassin_n armenian_n reform_v and_o other_o church_n be_v far_o more_o than_o the_o papist_n 2._o and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v so_o former_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v i_o will_v note_v at_o this_o time_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o sober_a of_o they_o melch._n canus_n loc._n theol._n li._n 6._o cap._n 7._o fol._n mihi_fw-la 201._o pugnatum_fw-la est_fw-la siquidem_fw-la uchementer_fw-la non_fw-la a_o graecis_fw-la solum_fw-la sed_fw-la ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la plerisque_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la apiscopis_fw-la ut_fw-la roman●_n ecclesiae_fw-la privilegium_fw-la labefactaretur_fw-la atque_fw-la habebant_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la illi_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o imperatorum_fw-la arma_fw-la &_o majorem_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la numerum_fw-la nunquam_fw-la tamen_fw-la efficere_fw-la potuerunt_fw-la ut_fw-la unius_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la potestatem_fw-la abrogarent_fw-la that_o be_v not_o only_o the_o greek_n ☜_o but_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v vehement_o fight_v to_o destroy_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v on_o their_o side_n both_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v never_o prevail_v to_o abrogate_v the_o power_n of_o one_o pope_n of_o rome_n mark_v here_o that_o it_o be_v only_a success_n that_o he_o plead_v but_o confess_v that_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n beside_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n be_v against_o the_o roman_a privilege_n as_o they_o call_v they_o &_o the_o pope_n power_n so_o that_o by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v the_o conscience_n and_o modesty_n of_o these_o man_n that_o not_o only_o call_v themselves_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o if_o all_o other_o beside_o they_o be_v some_o inconsiderable_a parcel_n but_o also_o will_v make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o before_o luther_n time_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o that_o deny_v their_o pretend_a power_n we_o may_v see_v from_o themselves_o then_o where_o our_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n so_o far_o as_o christian_n oppose_v the_o romish_a usurpation_n be_v our_o church_n even_o most_o of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n and_o therefore_o this_o may_v stop_v their_o mouth_n that_o use_v to_o call_v out_o to_o we_o for_o a_o catalogue_n of_o their_o name_n will_v they_o have_v the_o name_n of_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n 2._o and_o then_o for_o the_o representative_a church_n if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n it_o must_v be_v a_o general_n council_n and_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o many_o such_o as_o themselves_o call_v general_a council_n have_v contradict_v the_o pope_n depose_v and_o condemn_v he_o this_o bellarmine_n canus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o do_v confess_v and_o therefore_o i_o need_v not_o say_v more_o to_o prove_v it_o argu._n 18._o that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v be_v prove_v full_o 3._o both_o by_o the_o error_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o by_o their_o contradict_v one_o another_o it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v that_o the_o arrian_n have_v as_o general_a council_n as_o most_o ever_o the_o orthodox_n have_v have_v bellarmine_n and_o canus_n give_v more_o instance_n of_o err_a council_n than_o can_v be_v answer_v by_o the_o contrary_n mind_v 17._o pope_n adrian_n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o he_o confirm_v decree_n for_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n determine_v the_o contrary_a against_o the_o say_a council_n of_o nice_a though_o the_o pope_n legate_n contradict_v they_o so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o paris_n anno_fw-la 825._o 1._o who_o examine_v judge_v and_o reprehend_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o and_o pope_n adrian's_n confirmation_n and_o defence_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o bellarmine_n say_v they_o judge_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n their_o word_n be_v recite_v by_o bellarmine_n append._n de_fw-fr imag._n c._n 3._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 825._o n._n 5._o it_o be_v common_o know_v how_o nazianzen_n complain_v that_o he_o never_o yet_o see_v a_o council_n have_v a_o good_a end_n but_o thing_n be_v make_v worse_o by_o it_o and_o not_o better_o and_o hierom_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la galat._n say_v that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n against_o which_o if_o council_n determine_v any_o thing_n i_o account_v it_o wicked_a instance_n of_o the_o error_n of_o council_n we_o have_v too_o many_o etc._n the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n confirm_v by_o leo_n the_o four_o and_o by_o the_o first_o of_o nice_a as_o say_v the_o council_n of_o florence_n sess_v 7._o condemn_v second_o marriage_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 7._o though_o bellarmine_n vain_o excuse_v they_o by_o plain_a force_v their_o word_n the_o four_o council_n at_o carthage_n forbid_v bishop_n to_o read_v the_o gentile_n book_n which_o yet_o the_o apostle_n make_v use_v of_o and_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o since_o allow_v the_o council_n of_o toletane_a 1._o ordain_v that_o he_o wh●_n instead_o of_o a_o wife_n have_v a_o concubine_n shall_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o communion_n which_o bellarmine_n also_o false_o excuse_v the_o six_o general_n council_n at_o constantinople_n have_v many_o error_n which_o bellarmine_n confess_v and_o lay_v the_o cause_n on_o this_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o pope_n authority_n whereas_o pope_n adrian_n approve_v they_o liborum_fw-la and_o the_o seven_o council_n judge_v they_o genuine_a adrian_n say_v se_fw-la sextam_fw-la synodum_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la canonibus_fw-la recipere_fw-la he_o receive_v the_o six_o synod_n with_o all_o its_o canon_n and_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v divine_a the_o council_n at_o constance_n decree_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n at_o the_o lateran_n under_o julius_n 2._o and_o leo_fw-la 10._o decree_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o general_n council_n sess_z 11._o the_o council_n of_o calcedone_n abrogate_a the_o act_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o decree_v the_o contrary_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v notorious_o erroneous_a and_o contradict_v the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n and_o carthag_n 3._o about_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o number_n of_o their_o contradiction_n and_o error_n be_v too_o great_a for_o i_o here_o to_o recite_v many_o of_o our_o writer_n against_o the_o papist_n give_v you_o large_a catalogue_n and_o full_a proof_n of_o they_o see_v doctor_n sutline_v li._n 2._o the_o council_n cap._n 1._o what_o gregor_n nazianz._n and_o hierome_n say_v of_o they_o i_o touch_v before_o hilary_n li._n de_fw-la synodis_fw-la exclaim_v against_o the_o error_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o syrmium_fw-la and_o ancyra_n augustine_n say_v li._n 3_o cont_n maximni_fw-la c._n 14._o nec_fw-la ego_fw-la nicenum_n nec_fw-la tu_fw-la debes_fw-la ariminense_n ta●quam_fw-la praejudicaturus_fw-la profere_fw-la concilium_fw-la nec_fw-la ego_fw-la huius_fw-la authoritate_fw-la nec_fw-la tu_fw-la illius_fw-la detinenis_fw-la he_o say_v also_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr baptis_n concilia_fw-la plenaria_fw-la priora_fw-la a_o posterioribus_fw-la emendari_fw-la that_o be_v former_a council_n that_o be_v full_o have_v be_v mend_v by_o late_a bellarmine_n deceitful_a shift_a answer_n to_o these_o testimony_n be_v not_o worth_a the_o repeat_n isidore_n say_v 1._o quotiescunque_fw-la in_o gestis_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la discors_fw-la st●tentia_fw-la invenitur_fw-la illius_fw-la
spirit_n but_o i_o find_v that_o even_o there_o durandus_fw-la destroy_v the_o roman_a cause_n for_o he_o immediate_o add_v that_o hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la approbatione_fw-la scripturae_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la solum_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la fuit_fw-la tempore_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la qui_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la repleti_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nihilominus_fw-la viderunt_fw-la miracula_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o audierunt_fw-la ejus_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la &_o ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la convenientes_fw-la testes_fw-la omnium_fw-la quae_fw-la christus_fw-la fecit_fw-la aut_fw-la do●uit_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la eorum_fw-la testimonium_fw-la scriptura_fw-la continens_fw-la facta_fw-la &_o dicta_fw-la christi_fw-la approbaretur_fw-la that_o be_v 576._o this_o which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n be_v only_o mean_v of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o also_o see_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o hear_v his_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o be_v fit_a witness_n of_o all_o that_o christ_n do_v or_o teach_v that_o by_o their_o testimony_n the_o scripture_n contain_v the_o deed_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n err_v may_v be_v approve_v this_o he_o prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o conclude_v that_o the_o gospel_n which_o that_o church_n approve_v can_v now_o be_v reject_v because_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a cause_n and_o that_o immo_n tenens_fw-la contrarium_fw-la haereticus_fw-la est_fw-la cujuscunque_fw-la status_fw-la aut_fw-la conditionis_fw-la existat_fw-la yea_o he_o that_o hold_v the_o contrary_a be_v a_o heretic_n of_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n soever_o he_o be_v not_o except_v the_o pope_n himself_o be_v this_o like_a the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n or_o of_o protestant_n yea_o one_o word_n to_o master_n knot_n and_o those_o of_o his_o that_o will_v resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o present_a rome_n church_n if_o those_o miracle_n which_o they_o glory_v in_o be_v indeed_o regardable_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a for_o the_o author_n of_o those_o miracle_n do_v witness_v they_o to_o be_v fallible_a the_o old_a saint_n austin_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n and_o before_o who_o testimony_n about_o miracle_n they_o bring_v in_o as_o i_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v be_v against_o their_o usurp_a jurisdiction_n and_o infallibility_n their_o saint_n maud_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v ere_o long_o apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n total_o and_o open_o which_o do_v obscure_o apostatise_v of_o a_o long_a time_n before_o their_o saint_n elizabeth_n say_v that_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o but_o his_o member_n be_v dead_a jerem._n that_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n be_v possess_v with_o pride_n and_o the_o flock_n go_v astray_o the_o suppose_a prophet_n abbat_n joachim_n say_v there_o be_v yet_o another_o figtree_n wither_v by_o the_o curse_n of_o prevarication_n the_o latin_a church_n or_o the_o ship_n of_o peter_n who_o temporal_a leaf_n be_v make_v cover_v to_o excuse_v sin_n with_o which_o both_o adam_n the_o pope_n and_o eve_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n do_v cover_v the_o dishonesty_n of_o their_o life_n 57_o and_o miserable_o hide_v themselves_o in_o the_o wood_n of_o ecclesiastical_a glory_n but_o i_o will_v trouble_v myself_o and_o the_o reader_n with_o no_o more_o of_o this_o work_n fear_v that_o i_o have_v trespass_v in_o do_v more_o than_o need_v in_o so_o plain_a a_o case_n already_o i_o will_v therefore_o shut_v up_o all_o that_o i_o have_v to_o say_v from_o humane_a testimony_n with_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostom_n or_o whoever_o else_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a work_n on_o math._n and_o his_o own_o certain_a expression_n elsewhere_o in_o the_o imperfect_a comment_n edit_fw-la commel_n a_o 1617._o in_o math._n 20._o hom._n 35._o 900.901_o pag._n 900.901_o it_o be_v say_v as_o follow_v fructum_fw-la humilitatis_fw-la terrestris_fw-la posuit_fw-la primatum_fw-la caelestem_fw-la &_o primatus_fw-la terrestris_fw-la fructum_fw-la posuit_fw-la confusionem_fw-la caelestem_fw-la quicunque_fw-la ergo_fw-la defiderat_fw-la primatum_fw-la caelestem_fw-la sequatur_fw-la humilitatem_fw-la terrestrem_fw-la quicunque_fw-la autem_fw-la desiderat_fw-la primatum_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la inveniet_fw-la confusionem_fw-la in_o caelum_fw-la ut_fw-la jam_fw-la inter_fw-la seruos_fw-la christi_fw-la ●on_n sit_fw-la de_fw-la primatu_fw-la certamen_fw-la that_o be_v he_o have_v make_v the_o celestial_a primacy_n to_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o terrestrial_a humility_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o earthly_a primacy_n he_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v celestial_a confusion_n heaven_n whosoever_o therefore_o desire_v celestial_a primacy_n let_v he_o follow_v terrestrial_a humility_n but_o whosoever_o desire_v primacy_n on_o earth_n shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n that_o so_o a_o among_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n there_o may_v be_v no_o strife_n for_o primacy_n and_o afterward_o he_o add_v primatum_fw-la autem_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la concupiscere_fw-la neque_fw-la ratio_fw-la est_fw-la neque_fw-la causa_fw-la quia_fw-la neque_fw-la justum_fw-la est_fw-la neque_fw-la utile_fw-la quis_fw-la enim_fw-la sapiens_fw-la ultro_fw-la se_fw-la subjicere_fw-la festinar_fw-mi servituti_fw-la labori_fw-la dolori_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la majus_fw-la est_fw-la periculo_fw-la tali_fw-la ut_fw-la det_fw-la rationem_fw-la pro_fw-la omni_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apud_fw-la justum_fw-la judicem_fw-la nisi_fw-la forte_fw-fr qui_fw-la nec_fw-la credit_n judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la nec_fw-la time_n uti_fw-la abutens_fw-la primatu_fw-la svo_fw-la ecclesiastico_fw-la seculariter_fw-la convertat_fw-la eum_fw-la in_o secularem_fw-la that_o be_v but_o to_o desire_v a_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n there_o be_v neither_o reason_n nor_o cause_n because_o it_o be_v neither_o just_a nor_o profitable_a for_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v voluntary_o hasten_v to_o subject_v himself_o to_o servitude_n labour_n grief_n and_o which_o be_v more_o to_o such_o a_o danger_n as_o to_o be_v accountable_a to_o the_o righteous_a judge_n for_o all_o the_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v one_o that_o perhaps_o do_v neither_o believe_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n nor_o fear_v it_o that_o abuse_v secular_o his_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n he_o may_v turn_v it_o into_o a_o secular_a one_o will_v think_v this_o shall_v be_v plain_a enough_o against_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n if_o they_o tell_v i_o that_o this_o be_v none_o of_o chrysostom_n work_n but_o some_o heretic_n i_o answer_v when_o they_o have_v use_v for_o it_o they_o can_v magnify_v it_o let_v their_o sixtus_n senensis_n word_n be_v weigh_v which_o be_v print_v before_o this_o book_n especial_o what_o he_o say_v of_o some_o ancient_a copy_n which_o have_v the_o error_n only_o in_o the_o margin_n write_v by_o some_o arrian_n hand_n and_o withal_o that_o it_o be_v very_o observable_a that_o the_o error_n be_v so_o intermix_v that_o yet_o you_o may_v take_v they_o out_o and_o not_o maim_v any_o of_o the_o sense_n but_o leave_v the_o rest_n entire_a yea_o they_o seem_v as_o parenthentical_a or_o superfluous_a and_o then_o conjecture_v whether_o yet_o it_o may_v not_o be_v crysostomes_n but_o who_o be_v so_o ever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v ancient_a and_o common_o much_o commend_v but_o let_v that_o go_v which_o way_n it_o will_v as_o long_o as_o in_o the_o undoubted_a work_n of_o crysostome_n there_o be_v over_o and_o over_o again_o the_o like_a in_o his_o homil._n 66._o alias_o 67._o in_o mat._n 20._o pag._n 577._o 577._o he_o say_v they_o that_o seek_v primacy_n be_v a_o disgrace_n to_o themselves_o not_o know_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o shall_v thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o low_a state_n the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o homil._n on_o math._n 18._o i_o shall_v now_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o impartial_a by_o this_o small_a taste_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o former_a tme_n whether_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o universal_a government_n be_v a_o thing_n know_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o old_a or_o yield_v as_o soon_o as_o ambitious_o seek_v and_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o sit_v ground_n for_o we_o to_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o or_o resolve_v it_o into_o and_o if_o any_o will_v see_v more_o of_o the_o resistancy_n of_o their_o usurpation_n even_o when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o high_a he_o may_v read_v in_o mich._n goldastus_n a_o multitude_n of_o volume_n that_o will_v give_v he_o further_o information_n or_o in_o bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr success_n &_o stat_fw-la eccles_n he_o may_v find_v enough_o in_o narrow_a room_n the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o disputation_n shall_v consist_v of_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o popish_a argument_n for_o their_o cause_n but_o i_o can_v find_v so_o little_a in_o any_o of_o their_o write_n that_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o more_o than_o what_o be_v answer_v before_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o stand_v long_o upon_o this_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o our_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a than_o people_n
2._o either_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o popery_n be_v deceitful_a which_o make_v this_o its_o principal_a pretence_n for_o the_o usurp_a the_o universal_a headship_n if_o it_o be_v one_o than_o popery_n be_v deceitful_a which_o be_v renounce_v by_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o renounce_v they_o and_o separate_v from_o they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n who_o never_o yet_o in_o his_o great_a height_n have_v the_o actual_a government_n of_o half_a the_o christian_a world_n 3._o either_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v sound_a or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unsound_a that_o be_v swear_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n only_o according_a to_o their_o consent_n if_o it_o be_v sound_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unsound_a that_o arrogate_v a_o uiniversal_a government_n and_o infallibility_n and_o build_v upon_o a_o foundation_n that_o be_v never_o allow_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n as_o in_o the_o three_o disput_n i_o have_v full_o prove_v and_o which_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n do_v still_o reject_v 4._o either_o reason_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v renounce_v or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v than_o none_o can_v be_v papist_n but_o mad_a man_n if_o not_o than_o popery_n must_v be_v renounce_v which_o found_v our_o very_a faith_n upon_o impossibility_n and_o teach_v man_n of_o necessity_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o many_o the_o like_o which_o be_v afterward_o lay_v open_a 5._o either_o our_o five_o sense_n and_o the_o judgement_n make_v upon_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v fallible_a and_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v t●●●●ed_v for_o when_o all_o their_o tradition_n be_v by_o hear_v or_o read_v they_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o ever_o they_o hear_v or_o read_v any_o such_o thing_n and_o we_o must_v all_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o they_o speak_v or_o write_v it_o and_o then_o we_o must_v not_o only_o subscribe_v to_o fransc_n sanchez_n quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la scitur_fw-la but_o also_o say_v that_o nihil_fw-la certo_fw-la creditur_fw-la but_o if_o sense_n be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v not_o only_o fallible_a but_o certain_o false_a deceiver_n and_o deceive_v for_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n tell_v the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o they_o take_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n do_v tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v i_o see_v that_o its_o bread_n and_o wine_n i_o smell_v it_o i_o feel_v it_o i_o taste_v it_o and_o somewhat_o i_o hear_v to_o further_a my_o assurance_n and_o yet_o if_o popery_n be_v not_o false_a it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n one_o will_v think_v the_o dull_a reader_n may_v be_v quick_o here_o resolve_v whether_o popery_n be_v true_a or_o false_a look_v on_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n touch_v it_o smell_v it_o taste_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o can_v but_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v indeed_o bread_n and_o wine_n thou_o may_v be_v as_o sure_a that_o popery_n be_v a_o delusion_n and_o if_o thou_o can_v but_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o thou_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o council_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o doctor_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o if_o other_o man_n sense_n be_v deceitful_a they_o and_o thou_o be_v so_o too_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v urge_v in_o the_o follow_a disputation_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o observe_v how_o much_o they_o be_v at_o odds_o among_o themselves_o about_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o how_o near_o some_o of_o they_o come_v to_o we_o of_o late_a as_o in_o white_n be_v sonus_n buccinae_fw-la and_o doctor_n h._n holden_n de_fw-fr resol_n fidei_fw-la and_o in_o cressy_n and_o vane_n and_o other_o may_v be_v see_v and_o their_o silly_a follower_n in_o england_n think_v very_o that_o they_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n and_o how_o solicitous_a cressy_n and_o other_o be_v to_o take_v that_o infallibility_n out_o of_o our_o way_n as_o a_o stumble_a stone_n which_o the_o italian_n and_o most_o of_o they_o make_v the_o foundation_n and_o chief_a cornerstone_n what_o a_o task_n be_v it_o to_o reconcile_v but_o bellarmine_n and_o holden_n knot_n and_o cressy_a both_o in_o english_a white_a have_v so_o much_o wit_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o rushworth_n dialogue_n when_o he_o write_v in_o english_a to_o carry_v on_o the_o matter_n as_o smooth_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n but_o when_o he_o write_v in_o latin_a how_o many_o way_n of_o resolution_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v unsound_a can_v he_o find_v among_o the_o papist_n as_o different_a from_o his_o own_o vid._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o theolog_fw-la tract_n 1._o sect._n 28.29_o reader_n adhere_v to_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o arise_v at_o jerusalem_n be_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n contain_v all_o that_o be_v christian_n renounce_v not_o right_a reason_n or_o thy_o sense_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o light_n which_o be_v vouchsafe_v thou_o and_o then_o thou_o shall_v be_v safe_a from_o popery_n and_o all_o other_o pernicious_a damn_v error_n marc._n 10._o 1656_o 7._o r.b._n to_o the_o literate_a romanist_n that_o will_v read_v this_o book_n man_n and_o brethren_n a_o write_v that_o so_o much_o concern_v your_o cause_n i_o think_v shall_v tender_v you_o some_o account_n of_o its_o publication_n especial_o when_o i_o know_v that_o not_o only_o the_o divulge_v but_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v therein_o be_v so_o heinous_a a_o matter_n in_o your_o eye_n that_o if_o i_o be_v in_o your_o power_n the_o suspicion_n of_o it_o may_v bring_v i_o to_o the_o rack_n and_o the_o strappado_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o it_o will_v expose_v i_o to_o the_o flame_n i_o have_v many_o time_n consider_v that_o you_o can_v never_o sure_o endure_v to_o torment_v man_n in_o your_o inquisition_n and_o consume_v they_o to_o ash_n and_o so_o industrious_o to_o embroyle_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o blood_n and_o misery_n to_o work_v they_o to_o your_o mind_n and_o set_v up_o your_o own_o way_n if_o you_o do_v not_o think_v it_o right_n and_o think_v they_o exceed_v bid_v who_o you_o thus_o destroy_v i_o find_v that_o my_o own_o heart_n will_v serve_v i_o to_o use_v toad_n and_o serpent_n and_o destroy_a vermin_n half_o as_o bad_a as_o you_o do_v protestant_n that_o be_v to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n though_o not_o to_o torment_v they_o so_o long_o but_o for_o gentle_a and_o more_o harmless_a creature_n i_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o great_a reluctancy_n of_o my_o nature_n i_o must_v needs_o therefore_o by_o your_o work_n bear_v you_o record_v that_o you_o have_v a_o zeal_n for_o god_n but_o so_o have_v some_o before_o you_o that_o guide_v it_o not_o by_o knowledge_n rom._n 10.2_o and_o i_o suppose_v your_o way_n be_v undoubted_o right_a in_o your_o own_o eye_n or_o else_o you_o dare_v never_o prosecute_v it_o with_o such_o violence_n and_o yet_o one_o that_o be_v once_o as_o zealous_a in_o his_o way_n and_o shut_v up_o the_o saint_n in_o prison_n and_o receive_v authority_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n and_o compel_v they_o to_o blaspheam_n do_v afterward_o call_v all_o this_o but_o madness_n act_v 26.9_o 10_o 11._o but_o methinks_v i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v when_o i_o see_v man_n differ_v from_o i_o with_o such_o height_n of_o confidence_n to_o give_v they_o some_o reason_n of_o my_o differ_a thought_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n of_o success_n that_o i_o can_v expect_v from_o this_o account_n to_o make_v any_o addition_n or_o alteration_n in_o your_o belief_n i_o have_v no_o great_a reason_n to_o expect_v while_o you_o read_v my_o word_n with_o this_o prejudice_n that_o they_o be_v damnable_a heresy_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o who_o you_o suppose_v infallible_a for_o the_o fashion_v of_o your_o faith_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o i_o expect_v satisfaction_n from_o you_o with_o any_o great_a hope_n i_o shall_v but_o dissemble_v for_o i_o have_v not_o be_v negligent_a in_o read_v such_o write_n of_o your_o own_o as_o may_v acquaint_v i_o both_o with_o
ignorant_a soul_n that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o the_o religion_n be_v which_o they_o be_v turn_v to_o nor_o be_v able_a to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o their_o change_n i_o have_v speak_v with_o some_o affect_v to_o your_o way_n and_o some_o turn_v to_o it_o that_o have_v think_v our_o doctrine_n be_v you_o and_o you_o be_v we_o for_o instance_n that_o we_o teach_v that_o man_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n and_o you_o teach_v otherwise_o and_o have_v deny_v that_o you_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n merit_n and_o divers_a the_o like_a be_v not_o these_o good_a catholic_n and_o well_o convert_v that_o be_v of_o our_o mind_n and_o do_v not_o know_v it_o and_o i_o observe_v among_o your_o own_o writer_n that_o usual_o those_o that_o write_v in_o the_o most_o heavenly_a strain_n be_v those_o that_o give_v some_o wound_n to_o your_o profession_n by_o some_o considerable_a opposition_n as_o mirandula_n gerson_n bernard_n and_o many_o more_o and_o it_o have_v more_o disaffect_v i_o to_o your_o way_n to_o observe_v how_o low_o the_o design_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v in_o comparison_n of_o we_o you_o can_v let_v the_o common_a people_n be_v as_o blind_a as_o mole_n and_o worship_n they_o know_v not_o what_o and_o you_o almost_o confin_fw-fr religion_n unto_o votary_n and_o cloister_n when_o as_o the_o design_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v to_o make_v the_o generality_n of_o our_o pastoral_n charge_v more_o holy_a by_o far_o than_o your_o retire_a votary_n and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o be_o able_a to_o learn_v i_o do_v very_o think_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o small_a town_n that_o i_o live_v in_o some_o hundred_o of_o soul_n that_o have_v more_o true_a self-denial_n humility_n acquaintance_n with_o the_o save_a work_n of_o grace_n abhorrence_n of_o sin_n delight_n in_o god_n and_o believe_v serious_a thought_n of_o heaven_n than_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o twenty_o of_o your_o monastery_n when_o i_o be_o in_o one_o of_o their_o meeting_n which_o you_o account_v but_o a_o curse_a schismatical_a conventicle_n i_o can_v behold_v their_o diligent_a attendance_n their_o humble_a learning_n their_o modest_a orderly_a serious_a devotion_n and_o afterward_o their_o painful_a recollection_n and_o improvement_n of_o what_o they_o learn_v but_o among_o you_o i_o shall_v see_v a_o dumb_a show_n a_o pompous_a ostentation_n compound_v of_o ceremony_n and_o word_n which_o be_v as_o no_o word_n be_v not_o by_o the_o people_n understand_v and_o i_o be_o certain_o inform_v by_o traveller_n that_o have_v know_v they_o and_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n that_o you_o have_v priest_n even_o like_o your_o people_n and_o your_o service_n even_o unlearned_a man_n that_o be_v but_o able_a to_o read_v their_o mass_n like_o some_o of_o the_o worst_a of_o our_o old_a reader_n who_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o however_o you_o may_v have_v learned_a jesuit_n and_o friar_n that_o be_v breed_v up_o chief_o for_o your_o theological_a war_n while_o the_o people_n that_o live_v in_o peace_n under_o you_o be_v famish_v it_o have_v also_o much_o increase_v my_o disaffection_n to_o observe_v by_o what_o gross_a kind_n of_o cheat_v you_o carry_v on_o your_o cause_n you_o make_v a_o noise_n with_o the_o ostentation_n of_o miracle_n but_o we_o can_v never_o see_v one_o of_o they_o nor_o have_v certain_a proof_n of_o it_o i_o confess_v if_o i_o can_v see_v they_o they_o will_v work_v on_o i_o much_o and_o i_o will_v go_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n to_o see_v one_o but_o i_o know_v not_o whither_o to_o go_v with_o the_o least_o hope_n of_o such_o a_o sight_n you_o talk_v much_o of_o perfection_n and_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o god_n without_o sin_n but_o how_o long_o will_v it_o be_v before_o you_o will_v show_v we_o one_o of_o those_o sinless_a perfect_a man_n i_o have_v inquire_v of_o those_o that_o i_o think_v most_o likely_a and_o they_o have_v tell_v i_o that_o such_o man_n there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o will_v not_o be_v entreat_v to_o show_v i_o one_o of_o they_o nay_o it_o amaze_v i_o that_o you_o shall_v glory_v of_o perfection_n where_o it_o be_v so_o hard_a to_o find_v sincerity_n and_o to_o meet_v with_o a_o man_n that_o will_v not_o curse_v and_o swear_v and_o whore_n and_o be_v drink_v yea_o more_o to_o find_v that_o after_o this_o ostentation_n of_o perfection_n you_o come_v so_o low_a as_o to_o make_v those_o to_o be_v perfect_a which_o we_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o a_o damnable_a state_n for_o how_o many_o abominable_a sin_n do_v you_o make_v to_o be_v venial_a do_v i_o need_v to_o tell_v you_o what_o some_o of_o your_o own_o writer_n say_v of_o fornication_n and_o of_o a_o priest_n rather_o keep_v a_o concubine_n then_o a_o wife_n and_o what_o gain_n have_v come_v to_o the_o church_n by_o whorehouse_n and_o what_o a_o trade_n it_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o venice_n etc._n etc._n to_o give_v instance_n but_o in_o the_o sin_n of_o lie_v how_o light_n do_v you_o make_v of_o it_o yea_o you_o fear_v not_o to_o teach_v your_o english_a proselyte_n that_o a_o lie_n be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n when_o it_o be_v any_o great_a dishonour_n to_o god_n or_o notable_a prejudice_n to_o our_o neighbour_n otherwise_o if_o it_o be_v mere_o officious_a or_o jest_v it_o be_v but_o a_o venial_a sin_n they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o h.t._n they_o say_v henry_n turbervile_a in_o his_o catechism_n pag._n 160._o yea_o he_o say_v pag._n 268._o that_o by_o this_o we_o must_v know_v when_o a_o sin_n be_v mortal_a and_o when_o venial_a because_o to_o any_o mortal_a sin_n it_o be_v require_v both_o that_o it_o be_v deliberate_a and_o perfect_o voluntary_a and_o then_o set_v altogether_o and_o consider_v what_o your_o writer_n make_v of_o venial_a sin_n no_o worse_o than_o your_o doctor_n thomas_n sai_z that_o venial_a sin_n have_v not_o perfectam_fw-la rationem_fw-la peccati_fw-la but_o be_v analogical_o call_v sin_n and_o that_o non_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la legem_fw-la quia_fw-la venialiter_fw-la peccans_fw-la non_fw-la facit_fw-la quod_fw-la lex_fw-la prohibet_fw-la nec_fw-la pretermittit_fw-la id_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la lex_fw-la per_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la obligat_fw-la sed_fw-la facit_fw-la praeter_fw-la legem_fw-la it_o be_v not_o against_o the_o law_n nor_o forbid_v by_o it_o but_o beside_o it_o 12._o qu._n 88_o art_n 1._o ad_fw-la 1._o and_o that_o it_o deserve_v not_o damnation_n and_o eternal_a punishment_n be_v not_o due_a to_o it_o but_o temporal_a only_o 12._o q._n 87._o a._n 5._o c._n &_o q._n 88_o a._n 1._o c._n and_o that_o it_o induce_v not_o a_o blot_n on_o the_o soul_n 12._o q._n 89._o a_o 1._o c._n but_o only_o as_o it_o hinder_v the_o lustre_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v do_v away_o without_o the_o infusion_n of_o habitual_a grace_n 3._o q._n 8.7.2_o c._n apply_v this_o now_o to_o your_o last_o instance_a case_n it_o seem_v now_o that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n forbid_v not_o lie_v when_o it_o dishonour_v god_n but_o a_o little_a and_o not_o great_o or_o when_o it_o be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o another_o but_o not_o notable_a it_o forbid_v not_o man_n to_o lie_v officious_o or_o in_o jest_n as_o h.t._n speak_v nay_o it_o seem_v if_o you_o curse_v or_o swear_v or_o blaspheam_n the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o kill_v your_o own_o father_n or_o mother_n it_o be_v but_o a_o venial_a sin_n if_o you_o do_v it_o not_o deliberate_o and_o perfect_o voluntary_o and_o be_v not_o here_o a_o fine_a doctrine_n to_o make_v man_n perfect_a have_v you_o no_o way_n to_o make_v yourselves_o perfect_a but_o by_o make_v the_o law_n of_o god_n imperfect_a how_o can_v you_o persuade_v we_o to_o value_v such_o perfection_n do_v h.t._n think_v that_o a_o man_n that_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o god_n to_o deliberate_v of_o all_o the_o weighty_a action_n of_o his_o life_n and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v kill_v and_o blaspheam_n in_o passion_n and_o say_v i_o do_v not_o deliberate_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n god_n do_v not_o forbid_v it_o i_o shall_v this_o excuse_v he_o or_o be_v such_o doctrine_n to_o be_v endure_v among_o christian_n if_o god_n do_v not_o make_v it_o a_o reasonable_a man_n duty_n to_o use_v his_o reason_n in_o the_o great_a thing_n and_o to_o deliberate_v of_o what_o he_o say_v or_o do_v i_o know_v not_o what_o either_o reason_n or_o law_n be_v make_v for_o i_o think_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o not_o deliberate_v especial_o in_o weighty_a case_n be_v a_o heinous_a sin_n and_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o all_o other_o sin_n in_o many_o of_o the_o ungodly_a so_o i_o say_v of_o the_o other_o limitation_n that_o it_o be_v perfect_o voluntary_a passion_n may_v make_v a_o blasphemy_n or_o murder_n but_o imperfect_o voluntary_a and_o yet_o that_o prove_v not_o that_o god_n forbid_v
undeniable_a that_o you_o be_v of_o two_o church_n specifical_o different_a certain_o a_o body_n politic_a be_v specify_v from_o the_o summa_fw-la potestas_fw-la and_o therefore_o if_o the_o french_a make_v a_o council_n the_o summa_fw-la potestas_fw-la the_o sovereign_a power_n and_o the_o italian_n make_v the_o pope_n the_o sovereign_n and_o a_o three_o party_n make_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n conjunct●only_o the_o sovereign_a be_v not_o here_o undeniable_o several_a church_n specifical_o different_a and_o then_o you_o have_v another_o deceit_n for_o the_o salve_v of_o all_o this_o that_o increase_v my_o disaffection_n you_o glory_v in_o your_o present_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o we_o be_v all_o in_o piece_n that_o have_v no_o such_o judge_n and_o what_o the_o better_a be_v you_o for_o your_o judge_n when_o he_o can_v or_o dare_v not_o decide_v your_o controversy_n no_o he_o dare_v not_o determine_v this_o fundamental_a controversy_n whether_o himself_o or_o a_o council_n be_v the_o sovereign_a power_n for_o fear_v of_o lose_v the_o french_a and_o those_o that_o join_v with_o they_o so_o that_o it_o must_v remain_v but_o dogma_fw-la theologicum_fw-la and_o no_o point_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la what_o be_v the_o summa_fw-la potestas_fw-la and_o yet_o all_o that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la even_o our_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o it_o and_o do_v not_o this_o direct_o tend_v to_o infidelity_n will_v you_o have_v serious_a christian_n deliver_v up_o themselves_o to_o such_o a_o maze_n as_o this_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o unity_n what_o the_o better_a be_v you_o for_o a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o all_o those_o hundred_o of_o difference_n that_o be_v among_o yourselves_o when_o your_o judge_n either_o can_v or_o will_v not_o determine_v they_o be_v not_o we_o as_o well_o without_o he_o as_o you_o be_v with_o he_o plain_a thing_n that_o be_v past_a controversy_n have_v no_o need_n of_o your_o judge_n it_o be_v no_o controversy_n with_o we_o whether_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n whether_o he_o rise_v ascend_v and_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n and_o if_o we_o go_v to_o dark_a point_n your_o own_o judge_n will_v say_v nothing_o or_o worse_o why_o do_v you_o cry_v out_o so_o much_o against_o expound_v the_o scripture_n otherwise_o then_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n when_o your_o church_n will_v give_v you_o no_o interpretation_n of_o they_o do_v not_o your_o expositor_n differ_v about_o many_o hundred_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o neither_o pope_n nor_o council_n will_v decide_v the_o controversy_n these_o be_v therefore_o mere_a delusion_n of_o the_o world_n with_o the_o empty_a name_n of_o a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o indeed_o you_o sometime_o show_v yourselves_o that_o you_o have_v no_o such_o high_a conceit_n of_o your_o pope_n whatever_o you_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v as_o to_o trust_v his_o judgement_n your_o own_o priest_n watson_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o quodlib_a pag._n 56.57_o that_o the_o jesuit_n preach_v open_o in_o spain_n against_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o last_o of_o all_o holy_a memory_n and_o rail_v against_o he_o as_o against_o a_o most_o wicked_a man_n and_o monster_n on_o earth_n they_o have_v call_v he_o a_o lutherane_n heretic_n they_o have_v term_v he_o a_o wolf_n they_o have_v say_v he_o have_v undo_v all_o christendom_n if_o he_o have_v live_v and_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n himself_o as_o judge_v paramount_n be_v ask_v what_o he_o think_v of_o his_o death_n answer_v qui_fw-la sine_fw-la paenitentia_fw-la vivit_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la paenitentia_fw-la moritur_fw-la proculdubio_fw-la ad_fw-la infernum_fw-la descendit_fw-la and_o to_o a_o english_a doctor_n of_o our_o nation_n he_o say_v conceptis_fw-la verbis_fw-la quantum_fw-la capio_fw-la quantum_fw-la sapio_fw-la quamtum_fw-la intelligo_fw-la descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la infernum_fw-la and_o yet_o we_o must_v hold_v our_o belief_n in_o christ_n on_o the_o credit_n of_o such_o a_o man_n infallibility_n but_o yet_o i_o have_v not_o come_v to_o that_o point_n of_o your_o schism_n which_o above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n do_v alienate_v my_o mind_n from_o your_o profession_n and_o that_o be_v your_o separation_n from_o all_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n i_o find_v in_o myself_o so_o great_a a_o inclination_n to_o unity_n and_o the_o title_n catholic_a be_v so_o honourable_a in_o my_o esteem_n to_o they_o that_o deserve_v it_o that_o if_o i_o have_v find_v you_o to_o have_v the_o unity_n and_o catholic_a religion_n and_o church_n which_o you_o boast_v of_o it_o will_v have_v much_o incline_v i_o to_o your_o church_n and_o way_n but_o when_o i_o find_v you_o like_o the_o donatist_n confine_v the_o church_n to_o your_o party_n and_o make_v yourselves_o a_o sect_n and_o faction_n and_o unchurch_v and_o damn_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n this_o leave_v i_o assure_v that_o you_o be_v most_o notorious_a schismatic_n when_o i_o see_v so_o much_o knowledge_n and_o holiness_n comparative_o among_o the_o reform_a catholic_n and_o so_o much_o ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n among_o the_o papist_n even_n here_o where_o be_v but_o a_o remnant_n that_o adhere_v to_o their_o religion_n against_o the_o course_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o when_o i_o read_v so_o many_o plain_a promise_n in_o scripture_n that_o whoever_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v not_o perish_v and_o that_o if_o by_o the_o spirit_n we_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n we_o shall_v live_v and_o that_o if_o we_o repent_v our_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v yea_o that_o godliness_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o that_o to_o come_v and_o then_o when_o i_o find_v that_o the_o papist_n for_o all_o these_o certain_a promise_n do_v unchurch_n and_o damn_v we_o all_o because_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o in_o christ_n this_o satisfy_v i_o as_o full_o that_o you_o be_v most_o audacious_a schismatic_n as_o i_o be_o satisfy_v that_o you_o be_v papist_n what!_o must_v i_o be_v a_o papist_n on_o such_o ground_n as_o these_o must_v i_o believe_v because_o you_o tell_v i_o so_o that_o all_o the_o most_o conscionable_a heavenly_a christian_n that_o i_o be_o intimate_o acquaint_v with_o be_v unsanctified_a ungodly_a and_o in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n when_o i_o be_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o earnest_a breathe_n of_o their_o soul_n after_o more_o communion_n with_o god_n when_o they_o will_v not_o live_v in_o one_o of_o those_o sin_n that_o you_o call_v venial_a for_o all_o the_o world_n when_o they_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n and_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o wait_v for_o christ_n appearance_n and_o yet_o that_o such_o as_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v save_v that_o be_v so_o far_o below_o they_o because_o they_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n why_o you_o may_v almost_o as_o well_o persuade_v i_o to_o become_v a_o papist_n by_o tell_v i_o that_o you_o have_v eye_n in_o your_o head_n and_o nose_n on_o your_o face_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n have_v none_o do_v christ_n say_v he-that_a believe_v and_o repent_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o must_v i_o believe_v that_o all_o protestant_n shall_v be_v damn_v let_v they_o believe_v and_o repent_v never_o so_o much_o this_o be_v to_o bid_v i_o cease_v to_o believe_v christ_n that_o i_o may_v believe_v the_o pope_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a that_o i_o may_v become_v a_o papist_n i_o be_o confident_a i_o shall_v never_o be_v papist_n if_o it_o may_v not_o be_v do_v but_o by_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o godly_a that_o i_o be_o acquaint_v with_o be_v ungodly_a and_o in_o the_o way_n to_o hell_n and_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o quantity_n as_o well_o as_o the_o quality_n i_o feel_v a_o kind_n of_o universal_a charity_n within_o i_o extend_v to_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_a and_o therefore_o to_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n 773._o which_o will_v not_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o believe_v if_o a_o hundred_o pope_n shall_v swear_v it_o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n shall_v be_v damn_v because_o they_o be_v not_o subject_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o papist_n be_v but_o a_o handful_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n at_o least_o the_o small_a part_n by_o far_o the_o most_o of_o they_o never_o acknowledge_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o a_o few_o age_n ago_o before_o mahometanism_n and_o heathenism_n diminish_v the_o number_n of_o christian_n in_o asia_n and_o africa_n the_o papist_n be_v but_o a_o small_a proportion_n there_o be_v but_o late_o take_v off_o from_o the_o christian_a religion_n its_o probable_a twice_o as_o many_o as_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n if_o it_o be_v but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o nubia_n and_o tenduc_n how_o far_o will_v
they_o go_v on_o this_o account_n a_o bishop_n of_o your_o own_o and_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o dwell_v in_o those_o country_n say_v that_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o easterly_a part_n of_o asia_n alone_o exceed_v in_o multitude_n the_o christian_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n jacob._n a_o vitriaco_n hist_o orient_n c._n 77._o and_o which_o be_v more_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v far_o from_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o indeed_o have_v christ_n no_o church_n till_o the_o pope_n become_v universal_a monarch_n must_v paul_n be_v damn_v because_o he_o be_v not_o one_o of_o peter_n subject_n do_v not_o your_o conscience_n know_v that_o swear_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o thing_n unknown_a for_o many_o hundred_o year_n yea_o that_o it_o be_v a_o novelty_n in_o the_o world_n must_v christ_n lose_v for_o ever_o the_o most_o of_o his_o church_n even_o those_o that_o never_o hear_v of_o rome_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o pope_n never_o shall_v i_o be_v papist_n while_o i_o breath_n if_o i_o must_v be_v engage_v to_o send_v the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_n on_o earth_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o upon_o such_o a_o account_n as_o this_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o uncatholike_a so_o unchristian_a so_o inhuman_a that_o i_o wonder_v and_o wonder_v a_o hundred_o time_n how_o any_o learned_a sober_a man_n among_o you_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v they_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o a_o resolve_a catholic_a that_o own_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o can_v limit_v my_o charity_n to_o a_o corner_n or_o a_o faction_n especial_o so_o gross_a a_o one_o as_o you_o i_o own_v not_o the_o error_n or_o other_o sin_n of_o any_o of_o the_o church_n so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v discover_v they_o but_o if_o i_o must_v make_v they_o heretic_n and_o unchurch_n they_o for_o these_o yea_o even_o those_o that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o nestorian_n and_o eutichian_o i_o must_v needs_o put_v you_o in_o among_o they_o who_o i_o think_v do_v err_v more_o gross_o than_o they_o but_o i_o be_o none_o of_o your_o judge_n nor_o none_o of_o your_o most_o rigid_a adversary_n i_o be_o one_o that_o have_v be_v oft_o call_v a_o papist_n in_o print_n for_o avoid_v some_o of_o those_o extreme_n into_o which_o some_o other_o have_v run_v from_o you_o i_o be_o one_o that_o can_v choose_v but_o hope_v that_o there_o be_v thousand_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o profess_v themselves_o of_o your_o church_n and_o way_n but_o that_o i_o can_v do_v so_o myself_o and_o the_o reason_n why_o i_o can_v do_v it_o i_o have_v think_v good_a here_o to_o let_v you_o know_v many_o more_o there_o be_v but_o i_o have_v mention_v some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o follow_a disputation_n to_o which_o i_o refer_v you_o i_o can_v true_o say_v this_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o know_v my_o heart_n that_o if_o i_o know_v it_o myself_o i_o will_v most_o glad_o turn_n papist_n before_o i_o sleep_v if_o i_o can_v discern_v it_o to_o be_v the_o way_n of_o god_n yea_o if_o i_o have_v but_o any_o probability_n of_o it_o and_o know_v but_o the_o man_n that_o can_v give_v i_o satisfactory_a evidence_n on_o your_o side_n i_o will_v wander_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n to_o find_v he_o as_o weak_a and_o unfit_a for_o travail_v as_o i_o be_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o learned_a man_n among_o you_o have_v so_o much_o confidence_n of_o his_o way_n and_o charity_n to_o my_o soul_n as_o to_o persuade_v i_o to_o his_o opinion_n he_o shall_v at_o any_o seasonable_a time_n be_v welcome_a and_o i_o shall_v thankful_o entertain_v any_o evidence_n that_o he_o can_v bring_v according_a to_o my_o capacity_n but_o then_o i_o must_v desire_v he_o to_o deal_v plain_o and_o come_v bare_a facee_v and_o not_o to_o juggle_v under_o the_o vizor_n of_o a_o seeker_n or_o any_o other_o sect_n for_o that_o way_n will_v never_o take_v with_o i_o and_o i_o must_v further_o here_o profess_v that_o this_o paper_n come_v not_o with_o any_o cruel_a or_o bloody_a design_n against_o you_o i_o write_v not_o to_o exasperate_v the_o governor_n against_o you_o so_o far_o as_o to_o deal_v unmerciful_o with_o any_o of_o you_o and_o whereas_o under_o the_o vizor_n of_o the_o sect_n before_o mention_v you_o be_v of_o late_a so_o earnest_a in_o plead_v for_o a_o toleration_n deal_v but_o impartial_o like_o honest_a man_n and_o i_o will_v set_v in_o with_o you_o procure_v but_o a_o toleration_n for_o the_o reform_a christian_a religion_n in_o italy_n and_o spain_n and_o your_o part_n of_o germany_n portugal_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o shall_v willing_o petition_v the_o sovereign_a power_n in_o england_n that_o you_o may_v have_v as_o much_o liberty_n here_o but_o that_o you_o shall_v have_v full_a liberty_n here_o and_o protestant_n have_v none_o where_o you_o can_v hinder_v it_o this_o be_v not_o equal_a deal_n but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o that_o pretend_v so_o much_o to_o unity_n be_v in_o this_o also_o of_o so_o many_o opinion_n the_o english_a papist_n be_v for_o liberty_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o spanish_a and_o italian_a be_v against_o it_o but_o i_o must_v cry_v you_o mercy_n i_o now_o consider_v it_o be_v but_o yourselves_o that_o you_o think_v have_v right_a to_o liberty_n here_o and_o other_o shall_v have_v it_o but_o in_o order_n to_o you_o as_o hardly_o as_o you_o think_v you_o be_v use_v in_o england_n you_o live_v open_o among_o we_o and_o no_o man_n that_o i_o hear_v of_o lay_v hand_n on_o you_o when_o you_o know_v if_o a_o spaniard_n or_o italian_a be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o protestant_n he_o be_v as_o sure_a torment_v and_o burn_v at_o a_o stake_n as_o the_o coat_n be_v on_o his_o back_n do_v you_o not_o know_v this_o to_o be_v true_a be_v i_o in_o those_o place_n where_o your_o religion_n have_v its_o will_n i_o know_v one_o leaf_n of_o this_o book_n will_v cause_v i_o to_o be_v burn_v to_o ash_n that_o i_o be_o alive_a be_v because_o i_o be_o not_o in_o your_o power_n but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o wish_v not_o the_o shed_n of_o one_o drop_n of_o your_o blood_n nor_o your_o imprisonment_n or_o banishment_n but_o only_o your_o moderate_a and_o necessary_a restraint_n from_o open_a iniquity_n and_o seduce_v of_o those_o that_o be_v unfurnished_v to_o encounter_v you_o i_o have_v some_o invitation_n to_o make_v this_o profession_n by_o the_o usage_n of_o a_o justice_n of_o peace_n of_o this_o county_n who_o be_v so_o far_o your_o friend_n as_o to_o censure_v i_o and_o other_o for_o a_o late_a gratulation_n and_o petition_n to_o his_o highness_n the_o lord_n protector_n subscribe_v by_o many_o justice_n and_o by_o the_o grand_a jury_n and_o thousand_o of_o the_o county_n and_o to_o censure_v the_o say_a petition_n to_o be_v of_o a_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a complexion_n insert_v to_o your_o honour_n and_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n a_o vindication_n of_o your_o religion_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o the_o powder-plot_n and_o spanish_a invasion_n and_o other_o foreign_a bloody_a act_n and_o charge_v as_o much_o on_o the_o reform_a as_o can_v be_v charge_v on_o you_o according_a to_o the_o history_n call_v the_o image_n of_o both_o church_n and_o what_o be_v this_o bloody_a petition_n of_o this_o county_n why_o when_o you_o have_v murder_v and_o banish_v and_o starve_v such_o a_o multitude_n of_o the_o poor_a protestant_n in_o savoy_n and_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o it_o by_o a_o narrative_a from_o the_o lord_n protector_n himself_o invite_v we_o to_o contribute_v to_o relieve_v the_o remnant_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o your_o continue_a bloody_a deal_n and_o of_o the_o sad_a case_n of_o those_o poor_a people_n and_o the_o favour_n of_o his_o highness_n towards_o they_o we_o return_v he_o a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n of_o his_o care_n and_o add_v our_o desire_n to_o use_v the_o most_o effectual_a mean_n to_o hinder_v the_o growth_n of_o so_o bloody_a a_o doctrine_n lest_o it_o shall_v reach_v ourselves_o at_o last_o yet_o add_v that_o we_o desined_a no_o rigour_n as_o to_o your_o person_n but_o crave_v the_o promote_a of_o the_o reform_a religion_n and_o of_o unity_n among_o ourselves_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o preservation_n the_o world_n be_v come_v to_o a_o fair_a pass_n when_o our_o brethren_n be_v murder_v by_o thousand_o we_o be_v bloody_a for_o mention_v it_o and_o blame_v you_o for_o it_o and_o desire_v ourselves_o to_o be_v preserve_v from_o your_o doctrine_n and_o rage_n so_o as_o without_o any_o rigour_n to_o our_o person_n alas_o poor_a protestant_n when_o your_o throat_n be_v cut_v by_o the_o merciful_a
for_o the_o perfect_a or_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v this_o word_n only_o that_o we_o appeal_v to_o and_o desire_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o and_o the_o papist_n wilful_a decline_v of_o this_o trial_n and_o judgement_n do_v give_v any_o impartial_a observer_n sufficient_a cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o they_o take_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v against_o their_o cause_n or_o else_o why_o shall_v they_o not_o have_v as_o much_o confidence_n in_o it_o and_o commit_v their_o cause_n to_o it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o 2._o to_o run_v over_o every_o point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o they_o and_o prove_v our_o part_n by_o scripture_n will_v be_v a_o very_a easy_a work_n but_o it_o will_v make_v this_o disputation_n swell_v too_o big_a and_o it_o be_v do_v so_o large_o and_o often_o already_o by_o our_o writer_n that_o it_o be_v less_o necessary_a if_o any_o of_o they_o complain_v for_o the_o omission_n ●_o this_o part_n let_v he_o but_o assure_v i_o that_o he_o will_v stand_v t●_n the_o judgement_n of_o scripture_n and_o i_o shall_v quick_o a●●_n willing_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o he_o and_o go_v over_o th●●_n part_n of_o the_o task_n again_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v it_o su●●●_n to_o tell_v young_a student_n that_o amesius_n his_o bellarmi●●_n enervatus_fw-la have_v spoil_v all_o their_o cause_n of_o this_o defence_n and_o manifest_a scripture_n to_o be_v full_o against_o they_o i●_n a_o little_a room_n which_o may_v spare_v they_o the_o read_a o●_n many_o large_a and_o for_o the_o mere_a english_a reader_n mr._n ri._n bernard_n in_o his_o book_n call_v look_v beyond_o luther_n in_o his_o help_n annex_v to_o it_o have_v give_v a_o brief_a and_o effectual_a discovery_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n in_o a_o enumeration_n and_o proof_n of_o many_o of_o the_o point●_n in_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o which_o for_o brevity_n i_o refer_v they_o to_o in_o a_o word_n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a than_o that_o religion_n which_o agree_v with_o they_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o papist_n confess_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o major_n be_v plain_a in_o that_o scripture_n affirm_v of_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o furnish_v we_o to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o be_v write_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v and_o believe_v may_v have_v life_n in_o christ_n name_n etc._n etc._n joh._n 29.31_o 2_o tim._n 3.16_o 17._o of_o which_o we_o have_v say_v somewhat_o in_o a_o s●ort_a determination_n of_o that_o question_n by_o itself_o arg._n 2._o that_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n by_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n religion_n now_o call_v protestant_a be_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n save_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o major_n with_o reasonable_a man_n need_v no_o proof_n there_o be_v not_o many_o religion_n but_o only_o one_o that_o be_v a_o ●●fe_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n ●ent_v in_o and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v undoubted_o that_o one_o god_n have_v not_o since_o take_v down_o ●hat_n religion_n and_o set_v up_o another_o and_o make_v ●hat_n way_n safe_a to_o we_o which_o be_v unsafe_a to_o they_o the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v the_o apostle_n and_o church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v save_v by_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v contain_v or_o express_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o that_o be_v the_o same_o with_o this_o which_o be_v call_v ●he_n protestant_n religion_n for_o proof_n whereof_o i_o refer_v you_o and_o offer_v as_o abovesaid_a yield_v once_o that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v the_o rule_n to_o judge_v by_o and_o the_o controversy_n will_v soon_o be_v end_v betwixt_o we_o and_o i_o need_v not_o to_o say_v but_o these_o two_o thing_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o point_n 1._o that_o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v that_o the_o affirmative_a or_o positive_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v here_o in_o england_n profess_v be_v not_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o negative_n be_v of_o which_o we_o shall_v consider_v further_o anon_o 2._o as_o it_o be_v the_o great_a care_n of_o the_o papist_n to_o keep_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o people_n account_v it_o the_o original_a of_o heresy_n to_o have_v they_o translate_v as_o arboreus_n and_o many_o express_o say_v and_o burn_v man_n to_o ash_n for_o read_v the_o scripture_n when_o god_n will_v burn_v they_o in_o hell_n if_o they_o obey_v they_o not_o which_o they_o be_v not_o like_a to_o do_v without_o know_v they_o so_o experience_n have_v convince_v they_o that_o where_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n be_v but_o permit_v there_o do_v our_o religion_n most_o increase_v and_o popery_n decay_v so_o that_o if_o this_o one_o mean_n be_v but_o permit_v in_o spain_n and_o italy_n as_o it_o be_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o in_o other_o part_n undoubted_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n will_v soon_o come_v down_o i_o say_v if_o they_o dare_v but_o permit_v man_n to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n they_o know_v this_o well_o enough_o or_o else_o they_o will_v never_o so_o torture_v poor_a christian_n by_o the_o inquisition_n for_o have_v a_o bible_n in_o their_o house_n they_o have_v sure_o some_o humanity_n in_o they_o as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o therefore_o can_v never_o go_v so_o exceed_v far_o beyond_o the_o turk_n in_o cruelty_n to_o christian_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o know_v their_o whole_a cause_n and_o kingdom_n be_v concern_v in_o it_o and_o if_o once_o scripture_n get_v in_o they_o be_v go_v in_o a_o word_n multitude_n of_o volume_n have_v already_o prove_v that_o scripture_n be_v against_o popery_n argu._n 3_o that_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n in_o which_o the_o church_n in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o first_o age_n at_o least_o be_v save_v but_o the_o church_n in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o first_o age_n at_o least_o be_v save_v in_o that_o catholic_a christian_a religion_n which_o now_o be_v call_v the_o reform_a or_o protestant_n religion_n therefore_o this_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o mention_v not_o the_o former_a age_n as_o if_o all_o other_o follow_v age_n have_v come_v to_o heaven_n by_o any_o other_o religion_n than_o the_o former_a but_o 1._o because_o in_o they_o alone_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o major_a proposition_n none_o can_v be_v save_v in_o it_o especial_o not_o so_o many_o age_n of_o the_o pure_a time_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n 2._o because_o some_o popish_a error_n begin_v among_o the_o worse_a sort_n of_o ambitious_a superstitious_a prelate_n to_o creep_v in_o betimes_o and_o popery_n itself_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n soon_o after_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v open_o establish_v about_o the_o thousand_o year_n and_o according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o great_a difficulty_n of_o salvation_n because_o more_o impediment_n but_o still_o those_o that_o be_v save_v be_v all_o save_v in_o and_o by_o the_o same_o religion_n of_o the_o former_a age_n and_o if_o they_o be_v save_v in_o any_o corruption_n yet_o not_o by_o it_o but_o from_o it_o or_o against_o it_o as_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a as_o it_o require_v a_o full_a volume_n of_o itself_o to_o produce_v the_o particular_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o we_o so_o be_v it_o already_o do_v in_o many_o volume_n and_o because_o the_o continual_a clamour_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v that_o antiquity_n be_v on_o their_o side_n i_o shall_v anon_o disprove_v they_o in_o the_o fundamental_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o in_o the_o follow_a disputation_n about_o their_o pretend_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n and_o in_o other_o particular_n desire_v they_o to_o give_v some_o reasonable_a answer_n to_o what_o be_v already_o allege_a by_o bishop_n usher_n dr_n field_n and_o many_o mor●_n of_o our_o writer_n before_o they_o expect_v we_o shall_v regard_v their_o vain_a immodest_a pretence_n and_o still_o let_v be_v be_v remember_v that_o for_o all_o the_o positive_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n they_o themselves_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n still_o hold_v it_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o doubtless_o that_o be_v entertain_v by_o all_o the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o religion_n they_o be_v save_v argu._n 4._o that_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a
point_n of_o order_n of_o ●_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n this_o do_v not_o make_v they_o ●●_o we_o to_o be_v of_o two_o religion_n or_o way_n of_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o they_o do_v not_o introduce_v any_o dangerous_a ●_o destructive_a point_n under_o that_o pretence_n obj._n but_o the_o church_n still_o hold_v those_o thing_n as_o ●●cessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o you_o deny_v ans_fw-fr w●_n deny_v that_o to_o be_v true_a some_o of_o the_o point_n in_o differ●●●_n be_v novelty_n of_o your_o own_o which_o the_o ancient_a chur●●_n do_v never_o hold_v the_o rest_n be_v such_o as_o they_o never_o ●_o such_o a_o stress_n as_o man_n salvation_n upon_o to_o conclude_v let_v it_o be_v consider_v whether_o th●_n argument_n may_v not_o damn_v yourselves_o which_o i_o t●_n against_o you_o thus._n the_o true_a safe_a religion_n have_v 〈◊〉_d a_o visible_a church_n profess_v it_o from_o christ_n time_n ●_o ●●w_o but_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o romanist_n as_o comprehend_v all_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o make_v by_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v not_o have_v any_o visible_a ●●urch_n profess_v it_o of_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o ●●rist_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a religion_n nor_o a_o ●●e_z way_n to_o salvation_n the_o minor_a i_o shall_v undertake_v ●●re_o seasonable_o to_o make_v good_a and_o our_o divine_n ●●e_v do_v it_o already_o no_o doubt_n but_o common_a reason_n and_o justice_n requir●●_n that_o you_o that_o call_v to_o we_o so_o earnest_o for_o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o all_o age_n ●●uld_v be_v as_o much_o oblige_v yourselves_o to_o give_v we_o a_o ●●●alogue_n of_o you_o yea_o and_o to_o give_v it_o first_o because_o 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o first_o in_o plead_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o undertake_v this_o task_n therefore_o and_o perform_v it_o well_o and_o ●u_n shall_v carry_v the_o whole_a cause_n give_v we_o a_o cata●ue_n of_o any_o beside_o impeach_v heretic_n that_o do_v ●n_v your_o main_a point_n of_o popery_n for_o many_o hundred_o ●●rs_n after_o christ_n and_o we_o will_v give_v you_o a_o full_a ac●●nt_n of_o such_o as_o contradict_v those_o conceit_n and_o be●●●ed_a as_o we_o do_v and_o let_v both_o be_v compare_v together_o ●_o let_v the_o most_o satisfaction_n and_o the_o full_a evidence_n ●●●ry_v it_o you_o make_v a_o mere_a empty_a noise_n among_o the_o ●●gar_n of_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n and_o call_v for_o ●roof_n of_o the_o perpetual_a or_o continue_a visibility_n of_o ●_o church_n as_o if_o in_o this_o you_o have_v the_o advantage_n ●_o the_o balance_n do_v turn_v on_o your_o side_n when_o as_o ●●ough_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n of_o ●_o proof_n in_o this_o as_o you_o pretend_v yet_o we_o know_v your_o advantage_n here_o to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o if_o you_o will_v ●_o be_v persuade_v to_o this_o way_n of_o trial_n it_o will_v be_v to_o the_o ●●●er_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o your_o cause_n what_o be_v the_o ●●tter_n else_o that_o you_o still_o appeal_v to_o the_o latter_a or_o pre●●t_a church_n and_o that_o be_v only_o to_o the_o roman_a and_o that_o be_v only_a to_o yourselves_o if_o we_o do_v but_o invite_v you_o to_o trial_n by_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n and_o record_n the_o three_o first_o age_n you_o present_o scorn_v the_o mo●_n and_o fall_n upon_o the_o father_n with_o accusation_n as_o if_o th●_n have_v not_o understand_v or_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o christian_a or_o church_n for_o you_o say_v they_o do_v not_o meddle_v with_o th●_n controversy_n and_o so_o you_o call_v we_o down_o to_o the_o la●_n or_o present_a time_n as_o have_v equal_a authority_n with_o ●_o first_o to_o which_o we_o say_v 1._o that_o the_o silence_n of_o ●_o first_o time_n concern_v these_o matter_n if_o there_o w●_n no_o more_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v t●_n they_o be_v not_o then_o take_v for_o any_o necessary_a point_n faith_n for_o though_o our_o record_n of_o the_o sec●_n age_n be_v very_o short_a yet_o both_o they_o and_o m●_n more_o those_o of_o the_o three_o and_o four_o age_n contain_v such_o purposely_o undertake_v explication●_n the_o christian_a faith_n that_o we_o can_v imagine_v suc●_n multitude_n of_o necessary_a point_n will_v have_v be_v o●ted_v 2._o and_o though_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o present_a ●_o have_v equal_a authority_n in_o rule_v their_o congregation_n with_o those_o of_o the_o second_o yet_o they_o can_v give_v ●_o sure_o a_o account_n what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o prac●_n of_o the_o former_a age_n nor_o any_o way_n prove_v it_o to_o we_o ●_o by_o produce_v such_o record_n the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny●_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o church_n do_v hold_v ●_o positive_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n that_o they_o hold_v it_o themselves_o for_o they_o themselves_o profess_v to_o believe_v ●●_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o we_o do_v they_o say_v ●_o believe_v the_o creed_n call_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o scene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n and_o that_o of_o ●●thanasius_fw-la and_o so_o do_v we_o still_o take_v the_o holy_a scepture_n only_o for_o our_o rule_n so_o that_o their_o own_o tong●_n ●ust_z confess_v the_o antiquity_n and_o universality_n and_o accession_n of_o our_o religion_n for_o this_o be_v we_o but_o all_o that_o they_o have_v to_o ob●ject_n be_v this_o that_o we_o ●n_v name_v no_o church_n or_o father_n that_o hold_v our_o negative_n to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o the_o negative_n at_o least_o for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o if_o not_o all_o be_v ●e_v mere_a consequence_n of_o the_o affirmative_n and_o posi●ves_n and_o employ_v or_o plain_o include_v in_o they_o for_o example_n when_o our_o religion_n say_v thou_o shall_v wor●ip_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v ●is_n include_v the_o negative_a thou_o shall_v ●ot_n worship_v or_o serve_v saint_n 4.10_o angel_n or_o ●ny_a other_o save_v only_o by_o a_o service_n and_o honour_n due_o ●bservient_fw-fr to_o the_o service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o ●herefore_o that_o we_o give_v not_o divine_a worship_n to_o the_o consecrated_a host_n or_o the_o virgin_n mary_n or_o to_o any_o ●ther_n mere_a creature_n our_o religion_n teach_v we_o to_o ●o_o all_o thing_n to_o edify_a 1_o cor._n 14.26_o this_o includ●th_v the_o negative_n that_o we_o must_v not_o worship_n god_n in_o ●n_n unknown_a tongue_n or_o unedifying_a manner_n bleat_v ●nd_n bellow_v out_o our_o prayer_n in_o hideous_a or_o ridiculous_a tone_n our_o religion_n make_v it_o the_o ministerial_a commission_n to_o teach_v the_o nation_n and_o baptise_v mat._n 28.19_o 20._o this_o include_v the_o negative_a that_o woman_n or_o lay_v man_n shall_v not_o so_o teach_v that_o be_v as_o commissioned_n officer_n nor_o baptize_v 28.19_o this_o affirmative_a peter_n be_v send_v to_o disciple_n nation_n include_v this_o negative_a peter_n be_v not_o send_v to_o be_v the_o fix_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o there_o ●o_o reside_v this_o affirmative_a the_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n include_v this_o negative_a ●_o peter_n alone_o be_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o affirmative_a it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n which_o we_o take_v ●nd_n eat_v and_o drink_v in_o the_o eucharist_n contain_v or_o imply_v the_o negative_a that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiator_n into_o i_o may_v thus_o instance_n in_o many_o more_o our_o negatives_n be_v contain_v or_o imply●●_n in_o our_o affirmative_n which_o yo●_n hold_v or_o confess_v yourselves_o hatch_v 2._o i_o answer_v further_o that_o we_o have_v express_v negative_n also_o both_o in_o scripture_n and_o father_n in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n we_o have_v a_o plain_a thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o graven_n image_n etc._n etc._n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o worship_v they_o etc._n etc._n we_o have_v a_o plain_a i●_n the_o church_n i_o have_v rather_o speak_v five_o word_n with_o my_o understanding_n that_o i_o may_v teach_v other_o also_o the●_n ten_o thousand_o word_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a 1_o cor._n 14.19_o we_o have_v a_o plain_a see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n rev._n 22.9_o and_o so_o of_o the_o chief_a difference_n through_o the_o rest_n 3._o if_o we_o have_v but_o this_o one_o point_n prove_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n it_o full_o warrant_v all_o our_o negative_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o papist_n for_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o scripture_n and_o
catholic_n church_n if_o any_o depart_n from_o scripcure_n as_o to_o the_o sense_n in_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a they_o cease_v to_o be_v of_o our_o religion_n if_o any_o depart_n from_o it_o in_o lesser_a thing_n they_o may_v yet_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o we_o but_o so_o far_o we_o disow_v they_o if_o we_o know_v it_o popery_n have_v no_o sure_a test_n or_o mean_n to_o prevent_v mutation_n but_o we_o have_v in_o that_o we_o fix_v on_o the_o immutable_a rock_n if_o anabaptist_n separatist_n or_o any_o erroneous_a person_n live_v among_o we_o so_o far_o as_o they_o hold_v those_o error_n so_o far_o they_o be_v none_o of_o we_o and_o if_o any_o err_v who_o we_o dare_v not_o reject_v we_o yet_o reject_v their_o error_n and_o take_v they_o for_o no_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o if_o this_o argument_n hold_v it_o will_v much_o more_o condemn_v the_o romanist_n who_o have_v more_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o way_n among_o they_o then_o the_o protestant_n as_o may_v in_o due_a place_n be_v show_v obj._n 6._o that_o be_v not_o the_o true_a religion_n nor_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n which_o man_n can_v have_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o but_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v such_o for_o they_o all_o profess_v their_o church_n to_o be_v fallible_a answ_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o a_o man_n that_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o a_o man_n that_o be_v deceive_v and_o between_o infallibility_n in_o the_o object_n and_o in_o the_o subject_a or_o intellect_n and_o between_o infallibility_n in_o the_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n and_o in_o some_o inferior_a small_a matter_n and_o so_o i_o ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o rule_n of_o our_o religion_n viz._n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_a yea_o the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v a_o infallible_a and_o the_o only_a infallible_a religion_n 2._o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o recipient_a must_v be_v difference_v from_o the_o religion_n which_o have_v no_o such_o weakness_n there_o be_v still_o the_o certainty_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o object_n when_o the_o believer_n through_o his_o own_o weakness_n may_v be_v uncertain_a 3._o no_o man_n be_v falsus_fw-la actual_o deceive_v while_o he_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n of_o our_o religion_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o this_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o 4._o no_o christian_a in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la nor_o no_o church_n be_v fallible_a or_o can_v err_v in_o the_o fundamental_o or_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a for_o if_o he_o do_v so_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o that_o to_o be_v a_o church_n 5._o in_o sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la he_o that_o be_v a_o common_a believer_n may_v apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o so_o may_v a_o particular_a church_n and_o therefore_o be_v fallible_a but_o be_v not_o as_o be_v say_v deceive_v till_o it_o turn_v from_o the_o infallible_a truth_n 6._o the_o best_a man_n or_o church_n on_o earth_n do_v know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o therefore_o err_v in_o part_n and_o therefore_o be_v fallible_a in_o part_n or_o in_o low_a thing_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o proof_n of_o the_o fallibility_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o reform_a religion_n that_o man_n may_v apostatise_v from_o it_o or_o that_o they_o may_v stagger_v in_o believe_v a_o infallible_a truth_n or_o that_o we_o be_v fallible_a in_o lesser_a thing_n all_o true_a believer_n be_v actual_o infallibl_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o particular_o of_o all_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a obj._n 7._o that_o religion_n be_v not_o true_a nor_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n which_o want_v many_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o protestant_a religion_n want_v many_o article_n of_o faith_n therefore_o answ_n 1._o we_o must_v distinguish_v of_o our_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o profess_a rule_n and_o as_o it_o be_v impress_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n in_o the_o former_a respect_n we_o say_v that_o our_o religion_n want_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o god_n perfect_a word_n be_v our_o religion_n but_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n religion_n be_v more_o or_o less_o imperfect_a according_a to_o the_o strength_n or_o weakness_n of_o man_n faith_n 2._o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o true_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o false_a one_o make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o be_v without_o the_o latter_a but_o want_v they_o not_o but_o we_o expect_v that_o they_o who_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n do_v prove_v they_o so_o obj._n 8._o your_o religion_n be_v unsafe_a by_o your_o own_o testimony_n you_o condemn_v one_o another_o the_o lutheran_n condemn_v the_o calvinist_n as_o blasphemous_a impious_a and_o damnable_a the_o calvinist_n condemn_v the_o lutheran_n the_o anabaptist_n both_o and_o every_o sect_n be_v condemn_v by_o other_o therefore_o ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o church_n confession_n pass_v no_o such_o condemnation_n nor_o any_o moderate_a sober_a man_n 2._o if_o two_o child_n fall_v out_o &_o call_v one_o another_o bastard_n they_o be_v never_o the_o more_o bastard_n for_o that_o nor_o will_v the_o father_n therefore_o call_v they_o so_o else_o what_o will_v become_v of_o your_o jesuit_n and_o dominican_n obj._n 9_o the_o very_a name_n of_o lutheran_n calvinist_n protestant_n do_v plain_o express_v a_o sect_n or_o party_n different_a from_o the_o name_n catholic_a which_o denote_v the_o true_a church_n which_o only_o hold_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o very_a name_n reform_a be_v novel_a and_o no_o proper_a title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o only_o a_o cloak_n for_o your_o schism_n which_o disclose_v the_o novelty_n of_o your_o church_n and_o way_n answ_n 1._o and_o of_o how_o much_o better_a signification_n think_v you_o be_v the_o name_n papist_n or_o romanist_n you_o call_v yourselves_o catholic_n and_o we_o call_v ourselves_o catholic_n you_o scornful_o call_v we_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n which_o be_v name_n that_o we_o disclaim_v and_o then_o argue_v from_o your_o own_o impose_v name_n will_v you_o have_v we_o do_v so_o by_o you_o and_o as_o for_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n and_o reform_v we_o use_v they_o not_o to_o express_v the_o essential_a nature_n of_o our_o religion_n but_o the_o accidental_a removal_n of_o your_o corruption_n so_o that_o though_o scripture_n or_o antiquity_n talk_v not_o of_o a_fw-la protestant_n or_o reform_a religion_n by_o name_n yet_o it_o commend_v to_o we_o that_o same_o religion_n which_o we_o now_o call_v protestant_n 〈◊〉_d reform_a but_o than_o it_o can_v not_o so_o be_v call_v because_o you_o have_v not_o then_o hatch_v your_o corruption_n and_o deformity_n which_o be_v presuppose_v to_o our_o reformation_n the_o man_n that_o fall_v among_o thief_n when_o his_o wound_n be_v heal_v be_v a_o cure_a man_n whereas_o before_o he_o be_v not_o a_o cure_v man_n because_o not_o a_o wound_a man_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v the_o same_o man_n as_o before_o and_o the_o thief_n ●hat_n wound_v he_o will_v have_v make_v but_o a_o foolish_a ●lea_n if_o they_o will_v have_v dispossess_v he_o of_o his_o inheritance_n on_o pretence_n that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o same_o man_n and_o have_v prove_v he_o not_o the_o same_o because_o he_o have_v ●ot_n the_o same_o name_n it_o be_v not_o a_o cure_a man_n that_o own_v that_o inheritance_n before_o obj._n 10._o where_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v there_o the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v and_o no_o where_o else_o but_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o with_o you_o but_o with_o we_o for_o you_o find_v we_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o name_n and_o thing_n and_o then_o depart_v from_o we_o as_o heretic_n in_o former_a age_n do_v from_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o you_o but_o we_o that_o have_v the_o true_a catholic_a religion_n which_o be_v the_o only_a safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n answ_n 1._o the_o church_n must_v be_v know_v to_o be_v true_a and_o catholic_a by_o the_o religion_n which_o it_o ow_v and_o not_o the_o religion_n by_o the_o church_n you_o begin_v at_o the_o wrong_a end_n as_o if_o i_o will_v prove_v such_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o virtue_n because_o it_o be_v in_o such_o a_o man_n as_o i_o esteem_v when_o i_o shall_v rather_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v honest_a and_o virtuous_a because_o that_o which_o be_v first_o prove_v honesty_n &_o virtue_n dwell_v in_o he_o 2._o do_v we_o not_o find_v the_o greek_a ethiopian_a and_o other_o church_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o well_o as_o you_o yet_o you_o will_v dispossess_v they_o 3._o we_o find_v you_o in_o possession_n of_o all_o in_o your_o own_o account_n and_o all_o be_v you_o if_o yourselves_o must_v be_v judge_n but_o in_o the_o account_n of_o the_o greek_a abassine_n and_o other_o church_n
image_n they_o elevate_v not_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o reserve_v it_o after_o communion_n their_o priest_n labour_n but_o beg_v not_o the_o emperor_n confer_v bishopric_n and_o benefice_n they_o use_v no_o confirmation_n nor_o extreme_a unction_n they_o admit_v a_o first_o marriage_n in_o bishop_n and_o priest_n they_o eat_v flesh_n on_o friday_n and_o yet_o this_o man_n say_v they_o differ_v not_o from_o they_o the_o second_o chapter_n be_v the_o mere_a ebullition_n of_o foolish_a malice_n deserve_v no_o reply_n to_o those_o that_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v deceive_v he_o will_v prove_v that_o according_a to_o these_o lax_n principle_n of_o our_o charity_n we_o may_v agree_v with_o jew_n turk_n mahometan_n as_o if_o we_o need_v a_o dispute_n to_o prove_v that_o these_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o that_o the_o greek_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n be_v but_o such_o dispute_n do_v the_o papist_n put_v we_o upon_o the_o bishop_n have_v conclude_v in_o his_o sermon_n that_o if_o we_o shall_v survey_v the_o several_a profession_n of_o christianity_n that_o have_v any_o large_a spread_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o put_v by_o the_o point_n wherein_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o and_o gather_v into_o one_o body_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o article_n wherein_o all_o general_o agree_v we_o shall_v find_v so_o much_o truth_n in_o they_o as_o be_v join_v with_o holy_a obedience_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o everlasting_a salvation_n neither_o have_v we_o cause_n to_o doubt_v but_o as_o many_o as_o do_v walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n neither_o overthrow_v that_o which_o they_o have_v build_v by_o superinduce_v any_o damnable_a heresy_n thereupon_o nor_o otherwise_o vitiate_a their_o holy_a faith_n with_o a_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a conversation_n peace_n shall_v be_v upon_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n and_o what_o have_v the_o confuter_n to_o say_v against_o this_o why_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o sacrament_n to_o try_v whether_o those_o common_o agree_v on_o may_v save_v and_o here_o he_o first_o tell_v we_o that_o some_o church_n be_v for_o seven_o some_o for_o three_o and_o some_o for_o two_o use_v no_o more_o therefore_o here_o be_v no_o agreement_n rep._n 1._o le●_n the_o nominal_a difference_n about_o the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v first_o lay_v by_o unless_o you_o think_v that_o word_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v the_o better_o see_v what_o real_a difference_n remain_v 2._o the_o two_o sacrament_n than_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o rest_n which_o you_o call_v sacrament_n this_o much_o in_o its_o own_o place_n then_o may_v save_v where_o no_o more_o be_v confess_v 3._o you_o vain_o put_v in_o the_o exclusion_n of_o more_o for_o that_o be_v none_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o all_o agree_v on_o all_o agree_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n and_o those_o may_v save_v but_o all_o agree_v not_o that_o there_o be_v but_o two_o this_o man_n therefore_o seem_v to_o dote_v when_o he_o shall_v gather_v up_o the_o common_a agreement_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n proposal_n he_o gather_v up_o the_o disagreement_n or_o vain_o pretend_v that_o we_o agree_v in_o nothing_o what_o do_v not_o you_o confess_v that_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v sacrament_n and_o do_v not_o we_o do_v so_o too_o next_o he_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o baptism_n and_o say_v that_o the_o roman_n and_o greek_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o use_n of_o baptism_n but_o to_o wash_v away_o sin_n the_o protestant_n of_o england_n and_o geneva_n say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n at_o all_o but_o only_o a_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_v make_v to_o the_o party_n baptize_v and_o that_o the_o child_n unbaptise_v may_v be_v save_v and_o the_o baptize_v damn_v repl._n 1_o you_o make_v yourselves_o much_o more_o the_o greek_n worse_o than_o you_o be_v do_v not_o your_o own_o maintain_v that_o baptism_n admit_v into_o the_o church_n and_o grant_v many_o other_o privilege_n beside_o wash_v away_o sin_n 2._o we_o say_v that_o to_o the_o child_n of_o promise_n it_o do_v secondary_o and_o by_o obsignation_n wash_v away_o or_o pardon_n sin_n by_o way_n of_o obsignation_n and_o solemn_a exhibition_n as_o the_o promise_n do_v primary_o as_o a_o deed_n of_o gift_n or_o legal_a grant_n as_o also_o that_o in_o the_o same_o way_n it_o secondary_o convey_v further_a grace_n according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o admit_v into_o the_o church_n and_o all_o this_o be_v common_o confess_v by_o yourselves_o and_o all_o christian_n of_o the_o greek_a or_o abassine_a church_n etc._n etc._n this_o much_o alone_a without_o your_o addition_n be_v as_o much_o at_o least_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v concern_v baptism_n next_o he_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o say_v that_o one_o party_n hold_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o other_o not_o and_o what_o of_o this_o do_v that_o prove_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o what_o all_o be_v agree_v on_o what_o we_o hold_v you_o deny_v not_o we_o hold_v the_o signify_v and_o seal_v and_o exhibit_v use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n though_o we_o deny_v transubstantiation_n and_o dare_v you_o deny_v these_o we_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n offer_v once_o on_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o church-communion_n and_o dare_v you_o deny_v these_o lay_v by_o your_o addition_n and_o that_o which_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o be_v enough_o to_o salvation_n his_o next_o instance_n be_v about_o faith_n because_o we_o say_v that_o historical_a faith_n may_v be_v in_o devil_n and_o miraculous_a faith_n in_o the_o wicked_a and_o calvin_n define_v justify_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o firm_a and_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o lutheran_n that_o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a persuasion_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o adoption_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o faith_n be_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n condemn_v to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o save_v faith_n common_a to_o papist_n and_o protestant_n repl._n here_o again_o you_o vain_o and_o fallacious_o bring_v in_o the_o disagreement_n and_o over_o pass_v the_o agreement_n 1._o we_o be_v agree_v that_o all_o those_o which_o the_o protestant_n call_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_a and_o particular_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o many_o thing_n more_o we_o be_v agree_v that_o christ_n and_o life_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o universal_a promise_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o that_o hear_v it_o and_o that_o all_o must_v first_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o promise_n and_o then_o hearty_o consent_v to_o the_o offer_n and_o accept_v the_o benefit_n and_o also_o believe_v and_o fear_v the_o threaten_a and_o join_v sincere_a love_n and_o obedience_n to_o all_o this_o this_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o and_o this_o be_v certain_o save_v to_o all_o that_o sincere_o believe_v and_o do_v as_o they_o thus_o profess_v but_o then_o whether_o historical_a faith_n be_v common_a or_o not_o whether_o assurance_n or_o strong_a persuasion_n of_o pardon_n be_v faith_n or_o justify_v faith_n with_o other_o the_o like_a these_o we_o be_v not_o agree_v in_o and_o without_o these_o we_o may_v be_v save_v the_o next_o exception_n be_v only_o this_o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o not_o what_o be_v those_o heresy_n that_o destroy_v this_o common_a faith_n rep._n and_o do_v that_o cross_a his_o former_a charitable_a conclusion_n what_o because_o he_o undertake_v not_o a_o alien_a task_n why_o in_o general_a they_o be_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o hold_v as_o that_o the_o common_a article_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v hold_v with_o it_o and_o that_o practical_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o next_o passage_n be_v this_o that_o be_v absurd_a for_o we_o to_o call_v they_o the_o true_a church_n or_o say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v when_o we_o have_v charge_v they_o with_o so_o much_o error_n and_o idolatry_n &c_n &c_n repl._n 1_o we_o only_o say_v that_o you_o be_v a_o pollute_a part_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o if_o your_o salvation_n be_v make_v so_o difficult_a by_o your_o error_n look_v you_o to_o that_o the_o bishop_n conclusion_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o communiter_fw-la credita_fw-la be_v nevertheless_o sound_a though_o you_o destroy_v yourselves_o by_o your_o corrupt_a addition_n 3._o multitude_n among_o you_o believe_v not_o your_o infallibility_n transubstantiation_n and_o many_o the_o like_a error_n 4._o many_o that_o behold_v they_o as_o opinion_n
speculative_o may_v yet_o hold_v the_o contrary_a truth_n practical_o not_o discern_v the_o contradiction_n i_o will_v glad_o have_v show_v the_o vainty_a of_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o pamphlet_n because_o i_o see_v he_o have_v contract_v most_o of_o their_o common_a cavil_n into_o a_o narrow_a room_n but_o the_o rest_n be_v less_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v already_o answer_v by_o many_o and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v no_o further_o digress_v in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o this_o confuter_n have_v already_o say_v so_o much_o against_o the_o chief_a of_o their_o objection_n as_o may_v leave_v the_o impartial_a reader_n confirm_v in_o it_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o popish_a cavil_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o christian_a catholic_a reform_v religion_n common_o call_v protestant_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n query_n whether_o popery_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n neg._n it_o be_v not_o as_o other_o man_n judge_n that_o we_o determine_v this_o question_n to_o their_o own_o master_n do_v they_o stand_v or_o fall_v but_o it_o be_v to_o render_v a_o account_n of_o our_o own_o belief_n and_o practice_n and_o for_o our_o further_a confirmation_n in_o the_o truth_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o against_o gainsayers_a and_o for_o the_o establish_n of_o our_o people_n against_o the_o sophistry_n and_o seduction_n of_o deceiver_n for_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o term_n i_o shall_v tell_v you_o 1._o what_o i_o mean_v by_o popery_n 2._o what_o i_o mean_v by_o salvation_n 3._o what_o by_o the_o way_n to_o it_o 4._o what_o by_o the_o word_n safe_a 1._o popery_n be_v a_o certain_a farrago_fw-la a_o mixture_n of_o many_o grievous_a error_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n government_n and_o worship_n express_v in_o their_o authorize_v write_n especial_o in_o their_o decretal_n and_o council_n corrupt_v the_o christian_a religion_n which_o they_o profess_v the_o whole_a be_v denominate_v from_o that_o one_o falsehood_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n and_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o christ_n vicar-general_n on_o earth_n and_o that_o only_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o those_o only_a catholics_n that_o so_o believe_v where_o note_v 1._o that_o the_o papist_n profess_v to_o be_v christian_n do_v first_o own_o the_o substance_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o then_o corrupt_v it_o and_o contradict_v it_o by_o this_o fardel_n of_o their_o own_o invention_n superad_v they_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v true_a every_o book_n that_o we_o believe_v and_o more_o they_o profess_v to_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o ancient_a creed_n common_o call_v the_o apostle_n the_o nicene_n or_o constantinopolitan_a it_o be_v not_o the_o christianity_n or_o true_a doctrine_n which_o they_o profess_v which_o we_o call_v popery_n 2._o it_o be_v therefore_o only_o their_o own_o invent_a corruption_n by_o which_o they_o contradict_v the_o christian_a verity_n which_o they_o profess_v which_o we_o call_v popery_n 3._o note_v that_o the_o common_a denominate_a corruption_n be_v the_o forementioned_a doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n universal_a episcopacy_n and_o headship_n or_o a_o supreamacy_n at_o least_o if_o not_o infallibility_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o one_o and_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o visible_a centre_n of_o its_o unity_n 4._o note_v also_o that_o as_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o corruption_n they_o agree_v not_o among_o themselves_o what_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v of_o their_o faith_n or_o religion_n and_o what_o not_o and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o exact_a enumeration_n of_o the_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o so_o a_o complete_a description_n of_o popery_n which_o be_v such_o a_o self-contradicting_a unreconcilable_a hodge_n podge_fw-mi but_o their_o error_n may_v be_v distribute_v into_o these_o three_o rank_n 1_o those_o that_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o suppose_v general_a council_n these_o they_o all_o receive_v and_o own_o 2._o those_o that_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o pope_n decretal_n without_o a_o council_n these_o some_o own_o as_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o some_o reject_v they_o i_o will_v not_o add_v as_o the_o three_o those_o that_o be_v establish_v by_o a_o council_n without_o the_o pope_n not_o because_o there_o never_o be_v a_o council_n that_o dissent_v from_o he_o in_o good_a but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o difficult_a matter_n at_o least_o to_o find_v any_o council_n that_o do_v go_v beyond_o or_o without_o he_o in_o evil_a or_o err_v without_o his_o approbation_n 3._o the_o three_o sort_n therefore_o shall_v be_v those_o opinion_n that_o be_v common_o maintain_v by_o their_o most_o approve_a writer_n which_o be_v publish_v in_o book_n that_o be_v license_v and_o commend_v by_o the_o pope_n authorize_v agent_n but_o be_v not_o determine_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o council_n these_o though_o they_o contend_v for_o and_o lay_v great_a weight_n on_o they_o in_o their_o disputation_n yet_o dare_v they_o not_o own_v they_o as_o any_o part_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o faith_n lest_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v divide_v and_o mutable_a a_o man_n will_v think_v that_o those_o volumnious_a hot_a dispute_n about_o divine_a thing_n do_v intimate_v that_o the_o author_n do_v fide_fw-la divin●_n believe_v those_o point_n which_o they_o do_v so_o zealous_o dispute_v of_o but_o if_o it_o be_v their_o pleasure_n that_o we_o shall_v so_o distinguish_v we_o will_v call_v the_o rest_n the_o popish_a faith_n or_o religion_n and_o these_o last_o the_o popish_a opinion_n because_o we_o will_v fasten_v on_o they_o nothing_o but_o their_o own_o if_o you_o ask_v i_o which_o be_v those_o doctrine_n which_o they_o take_v for_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o call_v popery_n i_o must_v refer_v you_o to_o their_o decretal_n and_o council_n on_o one_o side_n and_o god_n word_n on_o the_o other_o and_o all_o the_o doctrine_n in_o those_o their_o canon_n or_o determination_n that_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o mean_v by_o this_o name_n if_o they_o do_v lay_v great_a stress_n upon_o any_o one_o point_n than_o other_o its_o likely_a to_o be_v on_o those_o that_o be_v put_v into_o their_o creed_n and_o vow_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v only_o recite_v the_o latter_a half_n of_o their_o tridentine_a creed_n see_v they_o will_v own_v that_o or_o ●othing_n when_o they_o have_v begin_v with_o the_o ancient_a constantinopolitan_a creed_n contain_v the_o true_a principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o have_v end_v that_o they_o proceed_v thus_o as_o follow_v the_o apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o observation_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o same_o church_n i_o do_v most_o firm_o admit_v and_o embrace_v i_o admit_v also_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n according_a to_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_v to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o i_o will_v never_o take_v and_o interpret_v it_o but_o according_a to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n i_o do_v profess_v also_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o true_o and_o proper_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n institute_v by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n ●hough_o not_o all_o to_o every_o one_o to_o wit_n baptism_n confirmation_n the_o eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n order_n and_o matrimony_n and_o that_o they_o confer_v ●race_n and_o that_o of_o these_o baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n can_v be_v reiterated_a without_o sacrilege_n i_o do_v also_o receive_v and_o admit_v the_o receive_v and_o approve_a rite_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o solemn_a administration_n of_o all_o the_o aforesaid_a sacrament_n i_o do_v embrace_v and_o receive_v all_o and_o singular_a thing_n which_o in_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o trent_n be_v define_v and_o declare_v about_o original_a sin_n and_o justification_n in_o like_a manner_n i_o do_v profess_v that_o in_o the_o mass_n there_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n a_o true_a p●per_n and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o f●_n the_o dead_a and_o that_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a srcrament_n of_o ●_o eucharist_n there_o be_v true_o real_o and_o substanti●●y_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n together_o with_o the_o soul_n and_o di●●nity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o there_o 〈◊〉_d change_v make_v of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n ●_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o wine_n 〈◊〉_d blood_n which_o change_n
the_o apostle_n the_o three_o be_v that_o which_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o through_o all_o time_n past_a be_v deserve_o judge_v to_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o it_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n may_v institute_v the_o four_o be_v when_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v with_o one_o consent_n teach_v that_o such_o a_o thing_n descend_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n either_o congregate_v in_o a_o general_n council_n or_o write_v it_o apart_o in_o book_n this_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v a_o apostolic_a tradition_n the_o five_o rule_n be_v this_o that_o be_v without_o doubt_n to_o be_v believe_v to_o descend_v from_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o be_v hold_v for_o such_o in_o those_o church_n where_o the_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v entire_a and_o continue_a these_o be_v bellarmine_n five_o rule_n but_o 1._o what_o the_o particular_a apostolical_a tradition_n be_v which_o be_v god_n word_n according_a to_o these_o rule_n he_o have_v more_o wit_n or_o less_o honesty_n then_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v be_v it_o because_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v indeed_o yet_o unknown_a or_o can_v be_v know_v or_o because_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o make_v it_o know_v or_o because_o the_o pope_n must_v pretend_v to_o the_o keep_n of_o these_o hide_a law_n that_o so_o the_o world_n may_v receive_v they_o at_o his_o mouth_n 2._o and_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o these_o rule_n of_o bellarmine_n to_o know_v the_o unwritten_a word_n by_o be_v themselves_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o if_o they_o be_v be_v they_o write_v or_o unwritten_a and_o how_o know_v to_o be_v so_o if_o not_o than_o it_o seem_v we_o may_v have_v rule_n and_o mean_n which_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o may_v infallible_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o there_o need_v no_o unwritten_a word_n to_o deliver_v or_o prove_v the_o write_a word_n 3._o and_o why_o may_v not_o another_o doctor_n by_o these_o rule_n know_v the_o unwritten_a word_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n and_o another_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a 4._o and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o christian_a people_n through_o the_o world_n procure_v from_o some_o one_o charitable_a pope_n through_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o catalogue_n of_o those_o unwritten_a verity_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v once_o common_o know_v and_o man_n may_v know_v when_o they_o have_v all_o without_o uncertain_a dependency_n on_o the_o pope_n or_o travail_v in_o vain_a to_o rome_n to_o know_v 5._o and_o for_o those_o few_o that_o bellarmine_n have_v instance_a in_o viz._n the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n the_o validity_n of_o heretic_n baptism_n the_o fast_a of_o lent_n the_o inferior_a order_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o veneration_n of_o image_n to_o the_o first_o i_o say_v it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n but_o of_o humane_a ecclesiastical_a the_o second_o be_v prove_v full_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o so_o be_v the_o three_o if_o you_o take_v it_o of_o such_o heretic_n in_o a_o large_a sense_n as_o express_o exclude_v nothing_o essential_a to_o baptism_n but_o express_o include_v it_o all_o but_o for_o the_o rest_n bellarmine_n shall_v remember_v how_o elsewhere_o he_o defend_v the_o council_n that_o require_v the_o rebaptise_v of_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o the_o paulinist_n because_o they_o be_v antitrinitarians_a for_o lent_n i_o say_v no_o more_o can_v be_v prove_v of_o it_o but_o only_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a constitution_n and_o the_o inferior_a order_n be_v apparent_o novelty_n introduce_v after_o the_o first_o age_n if_o not_o the_o second_o too_o and_o not_o mention_v in_o any_o of_o the_o first_o writer_n but_o the_o sum_n of_o church_n officer_n enumerate_v without_o they_o much_o more_o novel_a be_v the_o unlawful_a use_n of_o image_n in_o church_n or_o as_o immediate_a instrument_n to_o excite_v devotion_n in_o prayer_n and_o for_o other_o lawful_a use_n we_o deny_v it_o not_o 6._o but_o principal_o i_o will_v entreat_v bellarmine_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o hereafter_o they_o will_v obtrude_v no_o unwritten_a word_n upon_o we_o but_o what_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v such_o at_o least_o by_o his_o own_o rule_n let_v we_o have_v some_o proof_n that_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o not_o their_o naked_a word_n without_o evidence_n and_o then_o we_o must_v entreat_v they_o to_o be_v so_o honest_a as_o not_o to_o unchurch_n the_o greek_n abassine_n armenian_n protestant_n and_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n except_o romanist_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o then_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o their_o own_o testimony_n alone_o nor_o yet_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o such_o a_o council_n as_o they_o at_o trent_n contain_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n real_a or_o representative_a nor_o yet_o to_o bring_v we_o two_o or_o three_o father_n and_o say_v that_o those_o be_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n more_o particular_o i_o answer_v to_o his_o rule_n in_o order_n to_o the_o first_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o prove_v if_o you_o can_v that_o ever_o the_o whole_a church_n embrace_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o point_n of_o divine_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o write_a word_n 2._o if_o the_o whole_a church_n embrace_v it_o than_o it_o be_v no_o secret_a and_o therefore_o we_o all_o may_v know_v it_o yea_o and_o actual_o do_v know_v it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o second_o rule_n i_o say_v you_o may_v prove_v a_o mistake_a observance_n of_o rite_n by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o prove_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n keep_v any_o thing_n unwritten_a which_o none_o can_v constitute_v but_o god_n but_o if_o they_o do_v still_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v know_v to_o all_o and_o therefore_o not_o controvertible_a or_o lock_v up_o in_o the_o pope_n closet_n prove_v also_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v not_o err_v in_o some_o lesser_a matter_n about_o christ_n suppose_a constitution_n to_o the_o three_o i_o say_v if_o by_o all_o time_n pass_v you_o include_v the_o apostle_n than_o we_o grant_v your_o rule_n but_o mere_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n may_v be_v observe_v through_o all_o time_n short_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o not_o as_o apostolical_a but_o ecclesiastical_a yet_o when_o you_o come_v to_o try_v your_o tradition_n by_o this_o rule_n i_o be_o not_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o you_o will_v but_o disgrace_v they_o and_o fail_v your_o reader_n just_a expectation_n to_o the_o four_o i_o say_v 1._o i_o will_v believe_v you_o if_o you_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n next_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o so_o near_o as_o that_o the_o danger_n of_o mistake_v be_v not_o great_a 2._o but_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o you_o will_v find_v any_o of_o your_o tradition_n assert_v to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n not_o near_o all_o in_o any_o one_o age_n unless_o you_o make_v your_o faction_n to_o be_v all_o the_o last_o rule_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a trick_n of_o wit_n to_o get_v the_o key_n into_o the_o pope_n hand_n alone_o to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o a_o church_n that_o have_v have_v a_o interrupt_a succession_n of_o true_a pastor_n from_o the_o apostle_n may_v fall_v into_o many_o error_n in_o process_n of_o time_n which_o in_o tertullia_n and_o irenaeus_n day_n when_o the_o memory_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n practice_n be_v so_o fresh_a they_o can_v not_o fall_v into_o so_o easy_o 2._o those_o church_n have_v receive_v their_o unwritten_a verity_n either_o by_o write_n from_o their_o predecessor_n or_o without_o if_o by_o write_n why_o can_v other_o find_v it_o there_o as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o without_o it_o must_v be_v a_o uncertain_a and_o mutable_a mean_n or_o by_o a_o mean_n so_o public_a still_o that_o all_o as_o well_o as_o they_o may_v know_v of_o it_o 3._o and_o we_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o succession_n of_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o romish_a see_v have_v be_v long_o ago_o and_o often_o interrupt_v and_o therefore_o this_o rule_n will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n but_o though_o i_o have_v be_v long_o upon_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o papist_n to_o prove_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n yet_o the_o next_o be_v the_o chief_a that_o i_o intend_v which_o also_o prove_v the_o mutability_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o papist_n ordinary_o hold_v that_o as_o to_o we_o that_o be_v god_n word_n which_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o clergy_n say_v be_v god_n word_n
and_o that_o his_o determination_n or_o declaration_n that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n do_v make_v it_o to_o we_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v to_o salvation_n which_o before_o be_v not_o so_o so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o papist_n the_o church_n faith_n must_v alter_v at_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n at_o least_o with_o his_o clergy_n and_o by_o new_a declaration_n and_o determination_n he_o may_v make_v they_o a_o new_a article_n of_o their_o creed_n when_o he_o will_v so_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v as_o mutable_a and_o fallible_a as_o their_o pope_n and_o this_o they_o be_v themselves_o aware_a of_o and_o therefore_o feign_v he_o to_o be_v infallible_a that_o they_o may_v prove_v their_o faith_n infallible_a which_o if_o they_o can_v do_v as_o they_o never_o can_v yet_o still_o their_o faith_n be_v mutable_a by_o their_o own_o confession_n if_o not_o by_o revocation_n yet_o by_o new_a addition_n as_o to_o we_o so_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v in_o continual_a progress_n or_o flux_n and_o grow_v in_o quantity_n as_o every_o pope_n do_v add_v his_o determination_n now_o i_o will_v know_v of_o any_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n himself_o if_o he_o will_v condescend_v to_o such_o consideration_n whether_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o yet_o they_o have_v all_o that_o be_v make_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v to_o salvation_n upon_o supposal_n of_o their_o determination_n how_o can_v they_o tell_v but_o that_o their_o successor_n may_v make_v the_o creed_n as_o long_o again_o as_o it_o be_v and_o make_v their_o religion_n another_o thing_n i_o know_v they_o will_v say_v that_o as_o to_o they_o no_o more_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la than_o the_o pope_n determine_v to_o be_v so_o but_o then_o 1._o if_o he_o will_v not_o determine_v it_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o none_o be_v damn_v for_o unbelief_n 2_o if_o it_o be_v a_o benefit_n to_o have_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n determine_v why_o be_v they_o not_o do_v but_o one_o pope_n must_v add_v one_o and_o another_o add_v another_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n if_o christ_n shall_v let_v they_o go_v on_o 3._o sure_o the_o preach_n of_o any_o one_o apostle_n or_o other_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o first_o age_n do_v leave_v the_o unbeliever_n without_o excuse_n and_o not_o only_o the_o cathedral_n determination_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o why_o then_o do_v not_o any_o preacher_n revelation_n of_o god_n will_v from_o his_o word_n oblige_v man_n now_o to_o believe_v as_o well_o as_o it_o do_v then_o and_o 3._o it_o be_v evident_a and_o undeniable_a that_o their_o practice_n be_v according_a to_o their_o principle_n the_o popish_a religion_n change_v so_o fast_o by_o the_o new_a addition_n of_o several_a pope_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n now_o as_o it_o be_v heretofore_o look_v but_o into_o the_o oath_n or_o trent_n confession_n which_o i_o recite_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o you_o may_v present_o see_v how_o their_o religion_n be_v swell_v big_a than_o it_o be_v all_o the_o pope_n decretal_n or_o at_o least_o all_o the_o canon_n of_o trent_n and_o every_o general_a council_n at_o least_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v enlarge_v their_o faith_n as_o they_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o what_o go_v before_o what_o a_o multitude_n of_o thing_n be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la now_o that_o be_v not_o so_o within_o a_o thousand_o year_n what_o man_n can_v give_v up_o himself_o to_o such_o a_o grow_a religion_n where_o we_o must_v wait_v on_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o enthusiast_n do_v on_o god_n for_o new_a additional_a revelation_n and_o can_v know_v when_o we_o have_v all_o or_o half_o how_o can_v they_o tell_v but_o their_o creed_n may_v fill_v more_o volume_n yet_o before_o that_o all_o their_o pope_n have_v do_v with_o it_o nay_o further_a note_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v not_o only_o new_a way_n to_o heaven_n but_o several_a way_n to_o heaven_n at_o once_o he_o can_v once_o dispense_v with_o the_o bohemian_n for_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n and_o yet_o make_v it_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o to_o take_v it_o but_o in_o one_o because_o he_o so_o decree_v it_o to_o be_v give_v so_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o creed_n in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o another_o in_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v a_o damnable_a heresy_n in_o part_n that_o be_v absolute_o under_o his_o power_n for_o the_o vuglar_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n but_o in_o england_n he_o can_v make_v it_o lawful_a lest_o it_o hinder_v his_o design_n though_o his_o doctor_n have_v long_o determine_v that_o it_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o heresy_n so_o that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o one_o country_n as_o it_o be_v in_o another_o nor_o the_o same_o thing_n at_o rome_n itself_o in_o one_o age_n as_o it_o be_v at_o another_o to_o give_v you_o a_o fresh_a example_n how_o long_o have_v the_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n the_o jansenist_n and_o the_o molinist_n be_v in_o contention_n about_o predestination_n freewill_n predetermination_n universal_a redemption_n etc._n etc._n and_o one_o party_n condemn_v the_o other_o profess_v their_o opinion_n to_o be_v heretical_a and_o destructive_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o write_n between_o petavius_n ricardus_n and_o vincentius_n lenis_n alius_fw-la fremondus_fw-la with_o many_o more_o before_o they_o but_o when_o they_o speak_v to_o we_o about_o these_o matter_n they_o persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v only_o about_o certain_a school_fw-mi point_n that_o they_o differ_v and_o not_o about_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o be_v not_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o we_o till_o the_o pope_n have_v determine_v they_o and_o while_o the_o eager_a contender_n on_o either_o side_n endeavour_n to_o have_v the_o pope_n determine_v the_o controversy_n on_o their_o side_n no_o pope_n dare_v do_v it_o for_o fear_n of_o lose_v the_o reputation_n of_o his_o infallibility_n with_o the_o adverse_a party_n and_o so_o the_o unmerciful_a pope_n have_v long_o suffer_v their_o doctor_n to_o live_v in_o contention_n and_o to_o write_v voluminous_o against_o one_o another_o and_o their_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v break_v into_o party_n because_o they_o will_v not_o once_o open_v their_o mouth_n to_o decide_v the_o difference_n but_o now_o at_o last_o it_o please_v pope_n innocent_a the_o ten_o though_o he_o dare_v not_o touch_v the_o principal_a point_n to_o favour_v his_o jesuit_n so_o far_a as_o to_o determine_v five_o of_o the_o controvert_v point_n for_o the_o molinist_n against_o the_o jansenian_o when_o pope_n clement_n be_v once_o about_o determine_v all_o for_o the_o dominican_n as_o they_o think_v mark_v here_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o the_o stability_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o the_o determination_n each_o party_n maintain_v their_o way_n as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o accuse_v the_o other_o as_o heretical_a some_o bold_o prognosticate_v as_o our_o thomas_n anglus_fw-la alius_fw-la white_a that_o the_o pope_n will_v never_o determine_v the_o controversy_n about_o predetermination_n and_o now_o the_o pope_n have_v try_v the_o stomach_n of_o his_o dominican_n with_o the_o determination_n of_o these_o five_o article_n first_o to_o see_v how_o they_o will_v digest_v they_o before_o he_o go_v further_o and_o he_o pronounce_v they_o to_o be_v heretical_a and_o some_o of_o they_o temerarious_a impious_a and_o blasphemous_a too_o condemn_v they_o with_o anathema_n now_o those_o become_v point_n of_o faith_n on_o one_o side_n and_o heresy_n on_o the_o other_o which_o be_v none_o before_o till_o this_o determination_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n want_v five_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n or_o have_v five_o few_o than_o now_o they_o have_v a_o man_n may_v have_v be_v save_v before_o that_o have_v believe_v that_o liberty_n from_o necessity_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o merit_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o but_o now_o all_o of_o that_o belief_n must_v be_v damn_v and_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n unmerciful_a to_o the_o poor_a dominican_n to_o send_v they_o all_o to_o hell_n that_o can_v change_v their_o belief_n know_v how_o hard_o it_o be_v for_o a_o learned_a tribe_n especial_o so_o countenance_v by_o augustine_n and_o thomas_n to_o alter_v their_o mind_n unfeigned_o at_o a_o word_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o trent_n confession_n they_o must_v all_o solemn_o swear_v and_o vow_n that_o all_o thing_n deliver_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n especial_o that_o of_o trent_n they_o do_v without_o doubt_v receive_v and_o profess_v though_o no_o man_n have_v ever_o hear_v the_o pope_n reason_n yet_o if_o he_o do_v but_o see_v
and_o so_o to_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o this_o cup_n alas_o they_o know_v all_o this_o they_o can_v but_o know_v it_o and_o yet_o they_o will_v contradict_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n god_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o and_o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o drink_v the_o pope_n say_v let_v none_o of_o the_o people_n drink_v of_o it_o but_o the_o clergy_n only_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o abrogate_v god_n law_n and_o set_v up_o the_o pope_n above_o and_o against_o it_o yea_o unless_o it_o be_v to_o show_v the_o world_n their_o power_n to_o contradict_v christ_n and_o destroy_v his_o word_n who_o can_v imagine_v what_o shall_v move_v they_o to_o this_o attempt_n if_o there_o be_v any_o temptation_n of_o profit_n or_o honour_n in_o the_o business_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o mainta_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n purgatory_n indulgence_n pardon_n etc._n etc._n we_o shall_v not_o wonder_v at_o it_o but_o what_o profit_n or_o honour_n or_o pleasure_n be_v it_o thus_o to_o contradict_v christ_n and_o for_o they_o that_o add_v such_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o own_o ceremony_n to_o affect_v so_o to_o cut_v off_o one_o half_a of_o the_o sacramental_a rite_n and_o matter_n which_o christ_n ordain_v nay_o three_o do_v not_o these_o man_n know_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n be_v both_o give_v to_o the_o people_n by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o it_o so_o continue_a for_o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o that_o their_o alteration_n be_v a_o mere_a novelty_n yes_o they_o know_v all_o this_o for_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o far_o past_a doubt_n that_o they_o can_v but_o know_v it_o and_o yet_o these_o deceiver_n will_v make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o old_a religion_n and_o our_o region_n be_v new_a these_o be_v they_o that_o cry_v out_o against_o our_o cast_n off_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o the_o church_n constitution_n and_o custom_n and_o go_v in_o new_a way_n which_o our_o forefather_n know_v not_o these_o be_v they_o that_o make_v it_o a_o mark_n of_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v receive_v it_o and_o that_o as_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o these_o man_n dare_v cast_v off_o not_o only_o that_o which_o they_o know_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n receive_v and_o practise_v as_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o justin_n martyr_n tertullian_n and_o all_o antiquity_n profess_v but_o also_o be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n with_o what_o face_n can_v these_o that_o exclaim_v against_o novelty_n introduce_v such_o a_o palpable_a novelty_n into_o the_o church_n with_o what_o face_n can_v they_o that_o so_o cry_v up_o antiquity_n gainsay_v all_o antiqiuty_n and_o they_o that_o cry_v up_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_n so_o go_v against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o so_o many_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n they_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o this_o part_n of_o popery_n be_v utter_o new_a against_o the_o constant_a practice_n and_o canon_n of_o all_o church_n the_o three_o point_n which_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o be_v their_o perform_a god_n public_a service_n in_o latin_a and_o forbid_v the_o people_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o know_a vulgar_a tongue_n when_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v write_v the_o great_a part_n of_o a_o whole_a chapter_n 1_o cor._n 14._o express_o against_o this_o opinion_n and_o practice_n and_o for_o use_v of_o a_o know_a tongue_n that_o other_o may_v understand_v and_o be_v edify_v the_o evasion_n by_o which_o they_o will_v elude_v that_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o senseless_a that_o i_o think_v it_o not_o necessary_a to_o recite_v they_o but_o rather_o suppose_v that_o they_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n than_o the_o bare_a considerate_a read_n of_o the_o text_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v venture_v the_o reader_n if_o he_o have_v common_a capacity_n and_o impartiality_n and_o be_v but_o willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n upon_o any_o thing_n that_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o say_v for_o their_o latin_a service_n and_o lock_v up_o the_o scripture_n so_o be_v it_o he_o will_v but_o read_v that_o chapter_n considerate_o and_o be_v not_o these_o good_a teacher_n in_o christ_n school_n that_o will_v lock_v up_o the_o grammar_n from_o their_o scholar_n when_o it_o be_v the_o very_a office_n of_o the_o presbyter_n to_o teach_v it_o the_o people_n and_o to_o hide_v from_o they_o that_o word_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o he_o have_v give_v the_o world_n to_o be_v their_o directory_n to_o salvation_n the_o prophet_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v and_o write_v this_o word_n in_o a_o know●_n tongue_n to_o the_o people_n to_o who_o they_o do_v immediate_o direct_v it_o and_o must_v all_o hear_v and_o read_v it_o then_o and_o only_o the_o learned_a now_o be_v not_o these_o the_o man_n that_o take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o will_v neither_o enter_v in_o themselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v they_o do_v express_o contradict_v the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o bid_v the_o people_n not_o read_v the_o scripture_n when_o god_n have_v charge_v they_o to_o write_v it_o on_o the_o very_a post_n of_o their_o house_n and_o on_o their_o door_n and_o that_o it_o be_v as_o a_o frontlet_n between_o their_o eye_n and_o that_o they_o teach_v it_o their_o child_n speak_v of_o it_o lie_v down_o and_o rise_v up_o at_o home_o and_o abroad_o deut._n 6_o &_o 11._o god_n make_v it_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o bless_a man_n psal_n 1.2_o 3._o to_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n in_o his_o law_n as_o make_v it_o his_o delight_n and_o the_o papist_n common_o maintain_v in_o their_o write_n that_o to_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o heresy_n god_n make_v the_o study_n of_o his_o word_n the_o duty_n and_o mark_n of_o all_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o papist_n make_v it_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n and_o have_v burn_v many_o a_o one_o for_o it_o here_o in_o queen_n mary_n day_n and_o torment_a and_o burn_v many_o by_o their_o bloody_a inquisition_n for_o it_o abroad_o the_o very_a pharisee_n think_v that_o their_o vulgar_a be_v curse_v that_o know_v not_o the_o law_n and_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o let_v it_o be_v make_v know_v to_o they_o lest_o it_o make_v they_o accurse_v god_n say_v to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o isa_n 8.20_o the_o papist_n cry_v out_o precul_fw-la hinc_fw-la away_o let_v it_o alone_o meddle_v not_o with_o it_o it_o will_v make_v you_o heretic_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v have_v large_a experience_n that_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n and_o contradict_v their_o impiety_n be_v most_o effectual_o promote_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o think_v they_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o speak_v against_o it_o saint_n john_n say_v these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n throagh_fw-mi his_o name_n joh._n 20.31_o the_o papist_n say_v read_v not_o these_o holy_a write_n lest_o they_o destroy_v your_o faith_n and_o bring_v you_o to_o damnation_n when_o the_o man_n luk._n 10.26_o ask_v christ_n what_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n christ_n answer_v he_o thus_o what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n how_o read_v thou_o direct_v to_o the_o course_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v forbid_v the_o apostle_n say_v that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v aforetime_o be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n rom._n 15.4_o but_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o have_v man_n learn_v that_o which_o be_v write_v for_o their_o learning_n comfort_n and_o hope_n joh●_n write_v to_o father_n young_a man_n and_o child_n 1_o john_n 2.12_o 13_o 14._o god_n anger_n against_o the_o jew_n be_v that_o he_o have_v write_v to_o they_o the_o great_a or_o wonderful_a thing_n of_o his_o law_n and_o they_o have_v account_v they_o as_o strange_a thing_n hos_n 8.12_o and_o the_o papist_n will_v force_v people_n to_o be_v strange_a to_o these_o write_n yet_o how_o familiar_a comparative_o they_o be_v to_o the_o vulgar_a jew_n and_o their_o very_a child_n ●s_v know_v and_o acknowledge_v be_v it_o not_o a_o high_a advancement_n of_o the_o gospel_n church_n above_o the_o legal_a jewish_a church_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v vouchsafe_v it_o that_o we_o may_v not_o have_v the_o same_o liberty_n or_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n as_o the_o very_a child_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v their_o child_n must_v be_v teach_v
stitch_v his_o haircloth_n annot._n in_o clemanges_fw-la ex_fw-la caesario_n that_o a_o parrot_n cry_v out_o saint_n thomas_n help_v i_o be_v deliver_v from_o a_o hawk_n legend_n de_fw-fr thom_n cant._n that_o saint_n lupus_n do_v shut_v up_o the_o devil_n in_o a_o tankard_n all_o night_n legend_n de_fw-fr lupo_n that_o saint_n dominicke_n make_v the_o devil_n hold_v he_o the_o candle_n till_o he_o burn_v his_o finger_n legend_n de_fw-fr domin_n vid._n melch._n can._n loc_n theol._n that_o saint_n francis_n swallow_v a_o spider_n in_o a_o chalice_n it_o come_v whole_a out_o of_o his_o thigh_n vid._n franscis_fw-la that_o friar_n andrew_n to_o correct_v his_o appetite_n of_o eat_v bird_n at_o the_o table_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n command_v they_o to_o fly_v away_o after_o they_o be_v roast_v sedu●●_n francis_n i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o the_o recital_n of_o more_o nor_o do_v i_o say_v that_o their_o council_n have_v make_v these_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o their_o church_n do_v indulge_v and_o make_v use_n of_o such_o lie_v for_o the_o beguile_n of_o the_o vulgar_a 3._o the_o three_o instance_n that_o i_o give_v be_v their_o abominable_a forgery_n and_o depravation_n of_o ancient_a write_n feign_v decretal_a epistle_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o many_o other_o write_n under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o presume_v to_o expunge_v alter_v and_o falsify_v the_o true_a write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o their_o own_o as_o be_v prove_v already_o against_o they_o by_o many_o and_o i_o need_v not_o here_o recite_v see_v doctor_n featlyes_n aforesaid_a confer_v append._n which_o have_v do_v we_o so_o great_a a_o mischief_n by_o make_v much_o if_o not_o most_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_n uncertain_a to_o we_o as_o be_v scarce_o easy_o expressable_a nor_o be_v they_o ever_o able_a to_o repair_v as_o the_o late_a king_n of_o england_n tell_v the_o marquis_n of_o worcester_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o conference_n see_v more_o in_o doctor_n willet_n tetrastilon_n papismi_fw-la 5._o another_o of_o the_o principal_a prop_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v most_o horrid_a inhuman_a bloodshed_n and_o cruelty_n how_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n they_o cruel_o murder_v in_o savoy_n and_o france_n since_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o how_o many_o in_o bohemia_n how_o many_o in_o other_o country_n who_o can_v possible_o enumerate_v cesarius_n say_v the_o waldenses_n have_v infect_v a_o thousand_o city_n parson_n say_v that_o they_o be_v so_o numerous_a that_o they_o have_v a_o army_n of_o seventy_o thousand_o man_n to_o fight_v for_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o spread_v even_o in_o germany_n that_o they_o can_v travail_v from_o colen_n to_o milan_n in_o italy_n and_o every_o night_n lodge_v with_o host_n of_o their_o own_o profession_n yet_o do_v the_o papist_n by_o fire_n and_o sword_n disperse_v destroy_v they_o from_o the_o year_n 1206._o to_o 1228._o they_o have_v so_o fill_v their_o prison_n with_o those_o that_o they_o have_v leave_v that_o the_o archbishop_n stay_v it_o because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o defray_v the_o charge_n of_o their_o food_n or_o to_o build_v prison_n for_o they_o as_o they_o themselves_o speak_v yet_o after_o this_o 1260._o morrel_n in_o his_o memorial_n say_v p._n ●4_n that_o there_o be_v above_o eight_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o some_o of_o their_o own_o popish_a writer_n say_v that_o it_o be_v so_o ancient_a that_o they_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o have_v thus_o continue_v successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o reformation_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n that_o can_v have_v it_o to_o read_v mr._n s._n clark_n general_a martyrology_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n and_o also_o of_o the_o spanish_a inquisition_n the_o bohemian_a and_o french_a cruelty_n and_o the_o irish_a of_o late_a to_o spare_v i_o the_o labour_n of_o further_a recital_n the_o very_a perfidious_a french_a massacre_n at_o once_o be_v think_v in_o a_o few_o day_n space_n and_o a_o little_a room_n to_o murder_v about_o thirty_o thousand_o person_n and_o this_o in_o a_o pretence_n of_o peace_n and_o quietness_n so_o many_o bloody_a bout_n have_v that_o nation_n have_v that_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v still_o unavenge_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o inquisition_n in_o spain_n another_o part_n will_v hardly_o here_o be_v believe_v the_o most_o horrid_a cruelty_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o ireland_n late_o be_v beyond_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o number_n that_o they_o murder_v in_o time_n of_o peace_n by_o a_o sudden_a insurrection_n be_v almost_o incredible_a in_o the_o very_a province_n of_o ulster_n alone_o about_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o thousand_o be_v compute_v to_o be_v murder_v but_o god_n have_v go_v far_o in_o avenge_a their_o blood_n already_o what_o shall_v we_o mention_v such_o lesser_a matter_n as_o the_o burn_a so_o many_o in_o queen_n mary_n day_n the_o powder_n plot_n to_o have_v blow_v up_o king_n and_o parliament_n with_o many_o such_o fruit_n of_o the_o roman_a fury_n in_o a_o word_n i_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v so_o long_o uphold_v by_o such_o devilish_a inhuman_a bloody_a mean_n nor_o be_v it_o like_v to_o be_v true_a doctrine_n which_o possess_v man_n with_o such_o a_o bloodthirsty_a spirit_n nor_o be_v it_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n to_o swim_v thither_o through_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o better_a than_o a_o cruel_a scorn_v of_o christ_n when_o they_o have_v persecute_v he_o to_o murder_v christian_n by_o thousand_o for_o seek_v reformation_n or_o not_o yield_v to_o the_o romish_a error_n and_o then_o to_o challenge_v we_o to_o name_n or_o show_v our_o reform_a church_n before_o luther_n or_o to_o accuse_v we_o of_o schism_n for_o separate_v from_o they_o these_o wolf_n will_v accuse_v where_o they_o can_v devour_v arg_n 12._o if_o popery_n do_v add_v to_o all_o these_o abomination_n impenitency_n and_o uncurableness_n than_o it_o be_v certain_o no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o popery_n do_v add_v to_o all_o these_o abomination_n impenitency_n and_o uncurableness_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o do_v not_o mean_v that_o the_o person_n be_v simple_o uncurrable_a but_o while_o they_o be_v papist_n or_o go_v according_a to_o their_o fundamental_a principle_n they_o be_v utter_o uncurable_a and_o impenitent_a for_o their_o principle_n be_v that_o their_o pope_n or_o church_n can_v err_v but_o be_v infallible_a and_o so_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o all_o their_o determination_n right_a or_o wrong_n for_o if_o they_o shall_v repent_v of_o any_o and_o we_o return_v from_o any_o small_a or_o great_a they_o shall_v in_o so_o do_v proclaim_v that_o they_o be_v fallible_a and_o so_o let_v go_v the_o principle_n of_o their_o profession_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o any_o error_n once_o determine_v of_o but_o only_o by_o recant_v the_o point_n of_o their_o infallibility_n to_o make_v way_n thereto_o if_o therefore_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n what_o will_v become_v of_o these_o man_n that_o suppose_v themselves_o so_o infallible_a and_o how_o can_v that_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n that_o lock_v up_o the_o door_n against_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n popery_n therefore_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n arg._n 13._o that_o profession_n which_o plunge_v man_n into_o certain_a perjury_n and_o engage_v they_o to_o impossibility_n and_o contradictory_n be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o popery_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v even_o out_o of_o the_o trent_n oath_n or_o confession_n which_o i_o recite_v in_o the_o beginning_n 1._o they_o vow_v and_o swear_v that_o all_o other_o thing_n deliver_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o especial_o the_o holy_a synod_n of_o trent_n they_o do_v without_o doubt_v receive_v and_o profess_v when_o as_o many_o of_o these_o canon_n and_o council_n be_v contrary_a each_o to_o other_o one_o undo_v what_o another_o do_v as_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v show_v and_o yet_o they_o swear_v to_o receive_v they_o all_o 2._o they_o swear_v to_o receive_v they_o even_o without_o doubt_v when_o as_o they_o be_v thus_o contradictory_n and_o when_o they_o confess_v that_o a_o true_a faith_n even_o in_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n may_v have_v doubt_v mix_v with_o it_o 3._o they_o vow_v and_o swear_v
that_o they_o will_v never_o take_v and_o interpret_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o unaniomous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n when_o as_o 1._o the_o father_n do_v not_o unanimous_o consent_v among_o themselves_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o be_v swear_v to_o take_v it_o in_o no_o sense_n because_o the_o father_n be_v not_o unanimous_a 2._o he_o that_o know_v not_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n where_o they_o be_v unanimous_a be_v swear_v hereby_o to_o take_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n in_o no_o sense_n 3._o if_o by_o the_o church_n who_o sense_n they_o also_o swear_v to_o admit_v be_v mean_v the_o present_a roman_a church_n than_o that_o church_n and_o the_o father_n do_v differ_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o many_o scripture_n so_o that_o in_o one_o article_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v forswear_v 4._o nay_o there_o be_v divers_a particular_n of_o the_o popish_a faith_n yea_o which_o in_o this_o oath_n they_o swear_v to_o which_o be_v against_o much_o more_o without_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n never_o consent_v to_o this_o very_a article_n that_o we_o must_v take_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n only_o in_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n they_o never_o consent_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o transubstantiation_n nay_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n be_v against_o these_o and_o yet_o these_o wretch_n swear_v not_o to_o take_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n but_o in_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n and_o withal_o swear_v the_o contrary_a in_o particular_n even_o that_o they_o believe_v that_o which_o the_o father_n never_o consent_v to_o but_o against_o never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n that_o there_o be_v seven_o true_o and_o proper_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n who_o live_v a_o thousand_o or_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n before_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v not_o err_v or_o can_v not_o err_v nor_o that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v offer_v a_o true_a proper_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a nor_n that_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v take_v under_o one_o kind_n and_o the_o cup_n withhold_v nor_o that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n or_o the_o soul_n there_o holpen_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a nor_o that_o the_o saint_n with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v to_o nor_n that_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v nor_o the_o power_n of_o popish_a indulgency_n leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n of_o they_o wholesome_a never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n over_o they_o nor_o that_o all_o christian_n or_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n shall_v swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o christ_n vicar_n let_v these_o proud_a deceiver_n show_v we_o if_o they_o can_v when_o the_o father_n or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n do_v ever_o take_v any_o such_o oath_n himself_o or_o persuade_v other_o to_o it_o yea_o or_o that_o they_o have_v consent_v to_o any_o one_o of_o these_o article_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n and_o trent_n oath_n what_o more_o evident_a to_o any_o man_n that_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o father_n then_o that_o these_o wretch_n do_v here_o most_o palpable_o forswear_v themselves_o even_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v swear_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o withal_o swear_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n never_o die_v rose_n or_o ascend_v or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n or_o everlasting_a life_n certain_o if_o the_o very_a faith_n of_o papist_n be_v contradiction_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o plain_a perjury_n than_o popery_n be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o will_v here_o have_v add_v as_o the_o fourteen_o argument_n that_o popery_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o old_a condemn_a error_n former_o call_v heresy_n which_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v testify_v against_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v have_v try_v their_o particular_a error_n not_o yet_o mention_v or_o insist_v on_o as_o their_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n and_o justification_n thereby_o satisfaction_n and_o many_o semipelagian_a error_n image-worship_n with_o many_o the_o like_a but_o that_o this_o be_v beyond_o my_o present_a intend_a scope_n and_o purpose_a brevity_n and_o be_v so_o full_o perform_v already_o by_o so_o many_o unanswerable_a treatise_n of_o our_o divine_n let_v we_o next_o here_o what_o be_v say_v of_o most_o moment_n to_o prove_v popery_n to_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n obj._n 1_o that_o religion_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o day_n without_o interruption_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v save_v in_o but_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o very_a subject_n of_o the_o question_n it_o be_v popery_n that_o we_o be_v dispute_v of_o and_o this_o argument_n instead_o of_o popery_n speak_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v two_o part_n first_o the_o christian_a faith_n second_o their_o own_o corruption_n deprave_v and_o contradict_v this_o faith_n the_o first_o as_o it_o stand_v alone_o uncontradict_v in_o the_o religion_n which_o ●e_v profess_v the_o second_o be_v it_o that_o we_o call_v popery_n and_o ●ay_n it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n 2._o and_o of_o this_o i_o deny_v the_o minor_a and_o say_v that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n never_o know_v it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o creature_n as_o a_o papist_n know_v in_o all_o the_o world_n till_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v about_o 606._o when_o pope_n boniface_n do_v first_o claim_v his_o universal_a papacy_n and_o headship_n and_o after_o that_o it_o be_v not_o till_o about_o one_o thousand_o year_n that_o the_o usurpation_n and_o tyranny_n be_v consent_v to_o any_o thing_n general_o in_o th●_n west_n and_o even_o the_o multitude_n still_o dissent_v and_o some_o opposition_n be_v still_o make_v against_o it_o and_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v dissent_v of_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v to_o silence_v all_o the_o papist_n on_o earth_n in_o bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr contin_fw-fr successione_n &_o slatu_n eccles_n occident_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_n and_o by_o bishop_n jewel_n and_o doctor_n field_n and_o in_o many_o of_o the_o old_a treatise_n against_o the_o pope_n publish_v together_o by_o goldastus_n which_o show_v we_o that_o he_o settle_v not_o his_o kingdom_n without_o continnual_a opposition_n and_o contradiction_n we_o affirm_v that_o popery_n be_v a_o mere_a novelty_n and_o challenge_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n to_o prove_v the_o antiquity_n of_o it_o when_o they_o have_v once_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v that_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v true_a which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n will_v report_v of_o themselves_o it_o be_v then_o a_o easy_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o make_v for_o their_o turn_n then_o they_o may_v say_v the_o father_n be_v for_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o papal_a sovereignty_n from_o st_n peter_n when_o there_o be_v never_o a_o true_a word_n in_o it_o then_o they_o may_v frame_v and_o forge_v new_a decretal_n and_o cut_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n th●_n which_o be_v against_o they_o and_o bring_v forth_o spurious_a write_n under_o their_o name_n and_o tell_v the_o people_n that_o our_o religion_n begin_v with_o luther_n for_o its_o easy_a to_o prove_v any_o thing_n where_o themselves_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o no_o witness_n but_o their_o own_o must_v be_v hear_v but_o if_o they_o dare_v leave_v that_o hold_n and_o come_v into_o the_o light_n its_o easy_a to_o evince_v the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n though_o not_o of_o every_o particular_a error_n they_o hold_v obj._n 2._o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n then_o popery_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n
utmost_a he_o and_o his_o factious_a clergy_n so_o also_o they_o be_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o whether_o 162.163_o the_o bishop_n in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v judge_n with_o the_o pope_n or_o only_o the_o pope_n counsellor_n yea_o or_o what_o a_o general_a council_n be_v though_o they_o all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n much_o less_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o church_n but_o only_o some_o of_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n yet_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o it_o must_v be_v free_o elect_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n or_o only_o so_o many_o and_o of_o such_o country_n as_o the_o pope_n shall_v choose_v and_o whether_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o council_n must_v concur_v with_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o minor_a part_n may_v not_o serve_v turn_v 164._o 5._o so_o also_o they_o be_v exceed_o disagree_v about_o the_o nature_n and_o extent_n or_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o judge_v 5._o some_o say_v that_o the_o church_n judge_v de_fw-la mediis_fw-la discursive_a sed_fw-la de_fw-fr conclusione_n per_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la propheticam_fw-la &_o divinam_fw-la and_o so_o these_o man_n may_v affirm_v agreeable_o to_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o pope_n definition_n be_v part_n of_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n as_o melchior_n canus_n affirm_v he_o hear_v a_o most_o excellent_a divine_n confess_v and_o cit_v gratian_n and_o innocent_n also_o as_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n 165._o and_o thus_o all_o the_o most_o wicked_a pope_n be_v make_v prophet_n and_o speak_v by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o other_o of_o they_o 4._o do_v deny_v this_o though_o yet_o they_o know_v not_o how_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a without_o declare_v themselves_o enthusiast_n also_o though_o say_v bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 2._o all_o yield_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v personal_o err_v through_o ignorance_n yet_o they_o be_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o whether_o he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n some_o 6._o say_v he_o may_v not_o and_o other_o that_o its_o most_o pious_a and_o probable_a to_o think_v he_o may_v not_o other_o reject_v that_o as_o false_a 8._o and_o say_v he_o may_v and_o one_o will_v think_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v out_o of_o question_n by_o long_a experience_n before_o this_o time_n and_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o three_o general_a council_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n ubi_fw-la sup_n c._n 11._o some_o say_v 3._o that_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v consult_v and_o give_v his_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v err_v though_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o may_v and_o that_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o court_n and_o council_n though_o not_o as_o a_o private_a doctor_n other_o 40._o say_v that_o he_o can_v err_v when_o he_o intend_v to_o bind_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o receive_v his_o sentence_n or_o when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n 233_o other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v even_o define_v in_o council_n but_o not_o in_o error_n manifest_a to_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o new_a or_o not_o manifest_a point_n 4._o other_o come_v yet_o near_o the_o matter_n and_o tell_v we_o merry_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o err_v in_o judgement_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n because_o when_o he_o first_o err_v thus_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n but_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a conclusion_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o brethren_n the_o like_a disagreement_n there_o be_v among_o they_o about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o general_n council_n some_o will_v make_v it_o the_o proper_a seat_n of_o infallibility_n and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v if_o he_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o council_n else_o he_o may_v other_o 1●_n say_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v if_o it_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n yea_o though_o the_o pope_n legate_n do_v consent_v or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o pope_n instruction_n but_o that_o they_o can_v err_v if_o they_o follow_v they_o or_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o so_o bellarmine_n canus_n and_o the_o late_a champion_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n differ_v as_o they_o have_v shrewd_o do_v when_o council_n have_v depose_v pope_n for_o heresy_n and_o wickedness_n some_o 86._o say_v that_o we_o may_v more_o safe_o follow_v the_o council_n then_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o other_o say_v the_o clean_a contrary_n and_o place_v the_o infallibility_n in_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o make_v it_o his_o work_n to_o reclaim_v the_o council_n though_o they_o be_v thus_o all_o in_o piece_n among_o themselves_o even_o about_o these_o their_o fundamental_o yet_o be_v it_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o deceitful_a writer_n to_o make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o agree_v and_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o they_o have_v universal_a tradition_n etc._n etc._n that_o by_o the_o noise_n of_o these_o big_a word_n they_o may_v do_v that_o which_o they_o can_v do_v by_o argument_n thus_o doctor_n vane_n their_o late_a proselyte_n and_o divers_a other_o do_v in_o their_o write_n overlook_v all_o their_o own_o disagreement_n and_o pass_v on_o as_o confident_o in_o their_o boast_n of_o the_o universal_a consent_n as_o if_o they_o be_v either_o such_o novice_n as_o understand_v not_o their_o own_o religion_n or_o such_o harden_a seducer_n as_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o other_o shall_v understand_v it_o here_o be_v in_o this_o our_o question_n contain_v three_o of_o the_o great_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n 1._o whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n to_o all_o the_o world_n 2._o whether_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o clergy_n be_v in●llible_a in_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n 3._o whether_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o this_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o they_o our_o intent_n in_o this_o present_a dispute_n be_v to_o deal_v most_o with_o the_o second_o yet_o so_o as_o it_o be_v connex_v with_o the_o other_o two_o and_o therefore_o shall_v take_v they_o in_o on_o the_o by_o but_o say_v less_o to_o they_o distinct_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o there_o be_v so_o much_o say_v already_o by_o our_o divine_n as_o all_o the_o papist_n on_o earth_n will_v never_o be_v able_a solid_o to_o answer_v to_o let_v pass_v all_o those_o beyond_o sea_n that_o have_v effectual_o confound_v they_o we_o have_v britain_n enough_o to_o hold_v they_o perpetual_a work_n as_o jewel_n reignolds_n whitaker_n white_n field_n usher_n camero_n baronius_n davenant_n chillingworth_n to_o who_o they_o have_v late_o lose_v their_o cause_n by_o show_v in_o a_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a reply_n how_o little_a they_o have_v to_o say_v against_o he_o with_o many_o more_o who_o will_v either_o remain_v unanswered_a or_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v worse_o to_o the_o adversary_n cause_n than_o silence_n itself_o which_o we_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n already_o to_o foretell_v as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o controversy_n to_o dispatch_v it_o in_o short_a as_o we_o distinguish_v between_o judicium_fw-la descretionis_fw-la directionis_fw-la &_o decisionis_fw-la a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n of_o direction_n and_o of_o decision_n so_o we_o kn●w_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o late_a that_o proper_o denominate_v a_o judge_n in_o the_o public_a and_o ordinary_a sense_n take_v our_o doctrine_n in_o these_o few_o proposition_n 1._o we_o say_v that_o every_o christian_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n to_o know_v that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v true_a and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o he_o be_v no_o christian_a or_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o judgement_n or_o reason_n but_o a_o brutish_a thing_n this_o therefore_o we_o confess_v the_o pope_n either_o have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v 2._o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o direction_n that_o be_v it_o belong_v to_o he_o by_o office_n to_o be_v a_o director_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o teach_v those_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o yet_o receive_v it_o not_o and_o to_o confirm_v those_o in_o it_o that_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v ability_n for_o the_o work_n of_o this_o office_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o true_a pastor_n bishop_n or_o preacher_n this_o power_n we_o shall_v confess_v to_o be_v in_o he_o as_o in_o other_o 3._o it_o belong_v to_o these_o teacher_n also_o to_o be_v special_o careful_a to_o preserve_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n from_o corruption_n and_o
to_o deliver_v they_o down_o to_o posterity_n in_o the_o purity_n as_o they_o receive_v they_o and_o to_o translate_v they_o into_o know_v tongue_n that_o the_o people_n may_v understand_v they_o though_o other_o also_o have_v a_o part_n in_o this_o work_n yet_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v by_o office_n the_o chief_a part_n 4._o it_o belong_v to_o they_o also_o to_o be_v witness_n and_o informer_n of_o the_o people_n how_o themselves_o do_v receive_v the_o faith_n and_o scripture_n from_o their_o ancestor_n and_o to_o show_v they_o how_o it_o come_v down_o to_o our_o hand_n by_o certain_a infallible_a tradition_n from_o age_n to_o age._n 5._o the_o church_n guide_v they_o be_v both_o preserver_n of_o the_o scripture_n witness_n of_o the_o tradition_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v such_o a_o power_n of_o judge_a a●_n belong_v to_o all_o these_o three_o 6._o in_o these_o act_n of_o their_o office_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o on_o a_o threefold_a account_n 1._o because_o of_o the_o evidence_n which_o they_o show_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o assertion_n though_o strict_o this_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v learning_n and_o so_o know_v then_o believe_v and_o be_v common_a to_o teacher_n with_o any_o other_o that_o show_v the_o same_o proof_n yet_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o ordinary_o they_o have_v much_o more_o knowledge_n in_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o teach_v then_o other_o man_n have_v therefore_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o it_o more_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o convince_v and_o more_o efficacy_n be_v in_o their_o teach_v because_o of_o their_o proof_n and_o better_a entertainment_n be_v due_a to_o their_o teach_v 2._o such_o a_o belief_n also_o be_v due_a to_o they_o as_o all_o man_n shall_v have_v in_o their_o own_o procession_n wherein_o they_o have_v long_o study_v and_o lay_v out_o their_o time_n and_o labour_n and_o wherein_o they_o be_v common_o know_v to_o excel_v other_o man_n every_o man_n that_o be_v less_o study_v in_o law_n physic_n or_o any_o other_o science_n or_o art_n be_v bind_v in_o reason_n to_o give_v some_o credit_n to_o lawyer_n physician_n and_o other_o that_o study_v and_o practise_v those_o arts._n this_o be_v but_o a_o humane_a faith_n 3._o beside_o this_o credit_n before_o mention_v which_o infidel_n themselves_o may_v give_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o their_o capacity_n there_o be_v a_o further_a credit_n due_a to_o they_o from_o profess_a believer_n and_o that_o be_v as_o they_o be_v officer_n authorize_v by_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o his_o assistance_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o though_o it_o make_v they_o not_o infallible_a in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o do_v it_o assure_v they_o of_o a_o more_o than_o common_a help_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o be_v his_o servant_n indeed_o 7._o there_o be_v more_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o belief_n due_a to_o many_o pastor_n caeteris_fw-la paribus_fw-la than_o to_o one_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n than_o to_o any_o part_n 8._o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o pastor_n in_o witness_v to_o the_o faith_n depend_v on_o their_o competency_n for_o such_o a_o testimony_n which_o consist_v in_o their_o sufficency_n or_o ability_n and_o their_o fidelity_n which_o they_o be_v rational_o to_o manifest_v that_o it_o may_v gain_v credit_n with_o other_o 9_o in_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v undetermined_a in_o scripture_n and_o commit_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v of_o they_o have_v a_o decisive_n power_n 1._o for_o the_o time_n or_o place_n or_o the_o like_a circumstance_n of_o god_n worship_n they_o be_v necessary_a in_o general_n viz._n there_o must_v be_v some_o time_n place_n etc._n etc._n but_o not_o in_o specie_fw-la such_o a_o time_n such_o a_o place_n be_v not_o necessary_a unless_o it_o be_v some_o that_o god_n have_v already_o make_v choice_n of_o here_o the_o church_n guide_v must_v authoritative_o determine_v whereupon_o the_o people_n be_v oblige_v to_o obey_v unless_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n where_o the_o determination_n be_v so_o perverse_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_n rule_v which_o scripture_n have_v give_v for_o it_o that_o it_o will_v overthrow_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o duty_n itself_o 2._o and_o in_o case_n of_o church_n censure_n when_o any_o man_n be_v accuse_v to_o deserve_v excommunication_n the_o church_n governor_n have_v a_o judicial_a decisive_n power_n as_o to_o those_o end_n though_o not_o to_o make_v a_o man_n guilty_a that_o be_v innocent_a yet_o to_o oblige_v the_o people_n to_o avoid_v communion_n with_o the_o person_n who_o they_o excommunicate_v except_o in_o such_o palpable_a maladministration_n and_o evident_a contradiction_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o may_v nullify_v their_o sentence_n for_o even_o here_o their_o power_n be_v not_o unlimited_a 10._o no_o man_n or_o company_n of_o man_n much_o less_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o proper_a decisive_n judicial_a power_n in_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n or_o whether_o the_o scripture_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o for_o the_o open_n of_o this_o understand_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o a_o decisive_n judicial_a power_n to_o wit_n such_o as_o a_o judge_n have_v in_o a_o controvert_v cause_n where_o the_o plaintiff_n and_o defendant_n must_v stand_v to_o his_o judgement_n be_v it_o right_n or_o wrong_n so_o that_o though_o the_o sentence_n be_v not_o just_a yet_o must_v it_o be_v decisive_n and_o obligatory_a so_o that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o judge_n in_o utramque_fw-la partem_fw-la on_o either_o side_n and_o the_o judgement_n must_v be_v valid_a such_o a_o decisive_n power_n no_o creature_n have_v in_o these_o case_n that_o we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n where_o let_v it_o be_v still_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o name_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o contend_v about_o if_o they_o will_v call_v that_o a_o decisive_n judicial_a power_n which_o be_v so_o limit_v to_o one_o part_n or_o side_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v valid_a or_o obligatory_a to_o the_o subject_n if_o it_o err_v or_o go_v on_o the_o other_o side_n concern_v which_o all_o man_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v grant_v they_o by_o god_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v they_o have_v leave_v and_o authority_n than_o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o far_o the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n that_o be_v if_o any_o man_n doubt_v whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o ask_v a_o preacher_n or_o bishop_n he_o have_v power_n to_o say_v yea_o but_o not_o to_o say_v no_o but_o this_o be_v no_o judicial_a power_n but_o a_o teach_v and_o witness_v act_n for_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o disobey_v they_o if_o they_o err_v and_o therefore_o bind_v to_o ●ry_v whether_o they_o err_v or_o not_o and_o not_o to_o follow_v their_o judgement_n further_o than_o it_o be_v right_a and_o sound_a therefore_o they_o have_v no_o decide_v judicial_a power_n which_o i_o prove_v thus_o arg._n 1._o if_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o have_v such_o a_o judicial_a decisive_n power_n then_o may_v they_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o redeemer_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o may_v cast_v faith_n and_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o be_v false_a and_o abominable_a therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o power_n for_o the_o consequence_n it_o be_v manifest_a suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v give_v judgement_n against_o god_n christ_n or_o scripture_n than_o man_n must_v by_o this_o doctrine_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o forsake_v god_n christ_n and_o scripture_n for_o the_o pope_n whereunto_o add_v a_o second_o argument_n from_o a_o further_a absurdity_n then_o either_o such_o as_o renounce_v god_n christ_n and_o scripture_n may_v be_v save_v or_o else_o god_n bind_v man_n by_o the_o pope_n to_o renounce_v he_o and_o the_o faith_n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n but_o both_o these_o consequent_n be_v false_a and_o abominable_a therefore_o i_o know_v they_o will_v here_o reply_v that_o we_o must_v not_o suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o therefore_o be_v infallible_a he_o will_v certain_o make_v no_o such_o false_a decision_n to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o why_o then_o shall_v it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n have_v give_v authority_n to_o decide_v in_o utramque_fw-la partem_fw-la on_o either_o side_n do_v god_n give_v a_o man_n authority_n to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v he_o and_o all_o other_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o do_v but_o he_o will_v
must_v lie_v upon_o the_o exposition_n of_o they_o the_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o deliver_v 2._o obscurity_n show_v the_o need_n of_o a_o teacher_n but_o not_o of_o a_o judge_n at_o least_o its_o plain_a that_o when_o any_o teacher_n shall_v remove_v the_o obscurity_n those_o text_n oblige_v we_o as_o well_o as_o the_o plain_a 3._o as_o i_o say_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v judge_n of_o all_o difficult_a controvert_v text_n he_o be_v a_o unfaithful_a judge_n that_o will_v not_o expound_v they_o to_o we_o and_o decide_v so_o many_o controversy_n as_o yet_o depend_v what_o good_a will_v it_o be_v to_o the_o church_n to_o have_v such_o a_o judge_n of_o difficult_a controvert_v text_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o consciousness_n of_o his_o ignorance_n dare_v not_o give_v we_o his_o judgement_n but_o have_v leave_v they_o undecided_a these_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n this_o dumb_a oracle_n that_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o and_o a_o mouth_n but_o speak_v not_o be_v not_o a_o fit_a foundation_n for_o the_o church_n faith_n 5._o where_o god_n call_v man_n to_o office_n and_o power_n he_o accomplish_v or_o fit_v they_o in_o some_o measure_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o but_o god_n have_v not_o fit_v all_o pope_n no_o nor_o any_o to_o jugde_v decisive_o of_o all_o controvert_v difficultye_n in_o scripture_n and_o religion_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o make_v they_o judge_n of_o they_o the_o minor_a shall_v be_v further_o prove_v anon_o many_o pope_n have_v be_v ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a many_o heretic_n unfit_a to_o decide_v all_o such_o controversy_n and_o they_o have_v show_v their_o unfitnesse_n by_o their_o non_fw-la performance_n or_o ill_a performance_n the_o great_a objection_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v this_o obj._n 1_o what!_o shall_v every_o one_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o scripture_n and_o take_v it_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o please_v shall_v every_o unlearned_a man_n or_o woman_n expound_v it_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n then_o we_o shall_v have_v variety_n of_o exposition_n whether_o be_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o church_n or_o every_o simple_a fellow_n to_o be_v judge_n answ_n 1._o neither_o have_v god_n make_v subject_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o his_o law_n by_o which_o they_o must_v live_v and_o by_o which_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v neither_o they_o nor_o your_o pope_n must_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o law_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n but_o obeyer_n of_o it_o 2._o we_o say_v not_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v expound_v the_o scripture_n as_o teacher_n of_o other_o unless_o in_o their_o own_o calling_n as_o to_o the_o child_n servant_n etc._n etc._n when_o they_o be_v able_a this_o we_o reserve_v to_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o nor_o do_v we_o say_v that_o any_o people_n must_v expound_v scripture_n according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n or_o misguide_v conceit_n but_o according_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o 4._o nor_o shall_v they_o in_o difficult_a case_n which_o be_v past_o their_o understanding_n presume_v of_o their_o own_o wit_n to_o know_v the_o right_a meaning_n but_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o teacher_n that_o god_n have_v set_v over_o they_o that_o so_o by_o their_o help_n they_o may_v learn_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o word_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o 5._o and_o if_o their_o teacher_n be_v singular_a or_o give_v they_o just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v their_o skill_n or_o fidelity_n they_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o regard_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o judicious_a then_o of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o of_o any_o one_o or_o few_o so_o far_o as_o the_o credit_n or_o authority_n of_o man_n must_v support_v a_o learner_n while_o he_o be_v a_o learning_n 6._o but_o what_o be_v it_o indeed_o such_o a_o monstrous_a heretical_a conceit_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o papist_n that_o every_o christian_n shall_v have_v a_o judicium_fw-la discretionis_fw-la a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v to_o perceive_v and_o discern_v which_o be_v truth_n and_o which_o be_v falsehood_n good_a lord_n whether_o will_v the_o heat_n of_o contention_n carry_v man_n why_o if_o they_o must_v not_o have_v this_o discern_a judgement_n 1._o then_o god_n do_v bind_v they_o all_o to_o be_v fool_n and_o ignorant_a 2._o and_o then_o religion_n and_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v the_o endowment_n of_o bruit_n that_o know_v not_o what_o they_o hold_v or_o do_v and_o not_o of_o reasonable_a man_n 3._o or_o else_o they_o that_o will_v be_v christian_n must_v have_v no_o faith_n or_o knowledge_n which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n be_v not_o faith_n a_o act_n of_o discretion_n must_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n and_o everlasting_a life_n believe_v they_o with_o his_o own_o understanding_n and_o do_v he_o not_o in_o believe_v they_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a and_o judge_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o be_v false_a 4._o why_o will_v you_o read_v or_o preach_v scripture_n to_o the_o people_n if_o you_o will_v not_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v will_v you_o not_o have_v their_o judgement_n discern_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o god_n have_v write_v or_o the_o priest_n shall_v preach_v to_o they_o 5._o doubtless_o you_o will_v allow_v they_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n about_o the_o pope_n decree_n and_o canon_n and_o your_o own_o determination_n how_o can_v they_o believe_v you_o if_o they_o do_v not_o by_o judgement_n discern_v the_o thing_n you_o say_v to_o be_v true_a and_o why_o will_v you_o not_o allow_v they_o the_o like_a towards_o god_n and_o his_o word_n will_v you_o say_v it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o their_o sin_n to_o believe_v god_n or_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o understand_v the_o pope_n law_n and_o their_o sin_n to_o understand_v god_n law_n why_o what_o do_v you_o say_v less_o when_o you_o yield_v they_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o to_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n and_o deny_v it_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o will_v misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n i_o ans_fw-fr 1._o so_o will_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a man_n on_o earth_n in_o some_o part_n because_o while_o we_o be_v here_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n 2._o their_o error_n be_v their_o sin_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v at_o all_o for_o fear_v of_o miss_v their_o way_n must_v they_o put_v out_o their_o eye_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o fear_v of_o err_v must_v they_o not_o know_v or_o labour_n to_o know_v for_o fear_v of_o mistake_v will_v any_o master_n take_v this_o well_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n or_o do_v nothing_o for_o fear_v of_o do_v his_o work_n amiss_o or_o refuse_v to_o go_v his_o journey_n lest_o he_o miss_v the_o way_n then_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o pope_n law_n neither_o and_o consequent_o not_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a for_o fear_v of_o err_v in_o our_o judgement_n when_o you_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n will_v you_o not_o have_v the_o people_n judge_v of_o your_o proof_n for_o fear_n of_o err_v this_o be_v even_o to_o make_v beast_n of_o christian_n 3._o what_o be_v teacher_n for_o but_o to_o guide_v they_o and_o help_v they_o to_o understand_v if_o you_o be_v afraid_a lest_o they_o shall_v err_v be_v the_o more_o diligent_a in_o instruct_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o work_n of_o a_o popish_a teacher_n and_o we_o they_o make_v it_o their_o work_n to_o put_v out_o man_n eye_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o load_n of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v trouble_v with_o a_o imperfection_n in_o their_o sight_n and_o therefore_o will_v err_v if_o those_o imperfect_a eye_n be_v leave_v in_o their_o head_n we_o make_v it_o our_o work_n by_o all_o mean_v we_o can_v use_v to_o cure_v their_o eye_n sight_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o see_v themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n advise_v they_o while_o their_o eye_n be_v under_o cure_n not_o whole_o to_o trust_v to_o they_o but_o to_o use_v the_o help_n of_o other_o to_o show_v they_o the_o way_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o of_o danger_n the_o protestant_n will_v set_v his_o child_n to_o school_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o know_v that_o which_o through_o childishness_n he_o know_v not_o but_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a way_n we_o shall_v forbid_v they_o all_o book_n or_o learning_n lest_o they_o misunderstand_v they_o and_o let_v they_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n lest_o they_o know_v amiss_o the_o next_o step_n be_v to_o send_v they_o to_o bedlam_n the_o apostle_n will_v have_v man_n have_v their_o sense_n exercise_v to_o discern_v good_a
and_o evil_a heb._n 5.14_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o have_v the_o people_n to_o have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v if_o they_o must_v not_o discern_v they_o must_v be_v ignorant_a when_o god_n so_o much_o require_v and_o extoll_v knowledge_n but_o i_o will_v leave_v this_o question_n and_o pass_v to_o the_o next_o qu._n 2._o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a in_o this_o decisive_n judgement_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o which_o we_o deny_v but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o denial_n i_o shall_v further_o declare_v our_o judgement_n about_o the_o whole_a matter_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n that_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n may_v appear_v and_o 1._o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o objective_a certainty_n in_o all_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o in_o the_o very_a truth_n so_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a while_o he_o believe_v and_o declare_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n he_o and_o every_o man_n else_o that_o speak_v according_a to_o god_n word_n be_v so_o far_o infallible_a because_o that_o word_n be_v infallible_a they_o need_v not_o thank_v we_o for_o this_o concession_n 2._o we_o grant_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o a_o true_a church_n nor_o any_o other_o particular_a true_a church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o or_o in_o point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la that_o be_v while_o they_o remain_v a_o true_a church_n they_o never_o deny_v the_o essential_o of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o if_o they_o once_o deny_v the_o essential_o they_o do_v eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n 3._o we_o grant_v that_o christ_n universal_a church_n shall_v never_o deny_v any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o then_o christ_n shall_v have_v no_o true_a church_n on_o earth_n when_o the_o whole_a shall_v thus_o apostatise_v or_o turn_v heretic_n and_o all_o the_o then_o present_a world_n shall_v be_v damn_v 4._o the_o church_n as_o reasonable_a sensible_a man_n be_v infallible_a in_o many_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o which_o they_o may_v give_v we_o unerring_a report_n as_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v deliver_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o their_o ancestor_n as_o they_o may_v testify_v it_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o and_o that_o this_o creed_n or_o sum_n of_o faith_n also_o be_v thus_o deliver_v in_o the_o word_n now_o in_o use_n etc._n etc._n 5._o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o the_o evidence_n which_o the_o former_a church_n have_v leave_v and_o the_o present_a church_n possess_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o same_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o first_o church_n and_o from_o they_o down_o to_o we_o and_o that_o multitude_n of_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o they_o 6._o a_o illiterate_a person_n may_v have_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_v in_o certain_a translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o so_o far_o and_o much_o further_o they_o be_v true_o translate_v and_o that_o such_o thing_n there_o be_v in_o that_o book_n as_o the_o reader_n affirm_v there_o to_o be_v though_o himself_o can_v read_v they_o for_o all_o this_o be_v infallible_o discover_v by_o common_a consent_n and_o especial_o of_o adversary_n when_o all_o man_n that_o be_v certain_o able_a to_o judge_v and_o be_v honest_a and_o impartial_a affirm_v it_o without_o doubt_n and_o those_o that_o will_v glad_o contradict_v it_o as_o be_v by_o their_o interest_n carry_v thereto_o yet_o can_v do_v it_o or_o at_o least_o not_o with_o any_o considerable_a pretence_n this_o give_v man_n as_o infallible_a a_o proof_n as_o the_o common_a testimony_n of_o man_n do_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n or_o paris_n which_o we_o never_o see_v 7._o and_o we_o further_o grant_v all_o that_o teach_v and_o witness_v power_n to_o the_o church_n officer_n which_o be_v express_v under_o the_o last_o question_n and_o all_o that_o dueness_n of_o belief_n and_o obedience_n to_o they_o which_o be_v there_o assert_v so_o much_o for_o our_o concession_n but_o we_o deny_v 1._o that_o either_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o a_o general_n council_n be_v natural_o or_o supernatural_o privilege_v from_o all_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o god_n reveal_v will_n or_o that_o they_o be_v privilege_v from_o the_o danger_n or_o possibility_n of_o teach_v these_o their_o error_n to_o other_o even_o to_o the_o church_n 2._o we_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a clergy_n be_v secure_v from_o the_o danger_n of_o apostasy_n or_o heresy_n they_o may_v fall_v so_o far_o as_o to_o deny_v the_o fundamental_o or_o essential_o of_o christianity_n though_o the_o universal_a church_n shall_v never_o so_o fall_v away_o we_o shall_v first_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o afterward_o of_o a_o general_n council_n that_o we_o may_v speak_v to_o the_o several_a party_n among_o the_o divide_a papist_n herein_o and_o against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n we_o thus_o argue_v argu._n 1_o they_o that_o lie_v claim_v to_o this_o infallibility_n do_v give_v we_o no_o proof_n of_o their_o claim_n therefore_o they_o can_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v they_o the_o proof_n lie_v on_o the_o pretender_n who_o give_v we_o no_o proof_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v it_o it_o must_v be_v either_o by_o his_o natural_a perfection_n or_o some_o supernatural_a endowment_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v more_o infallible_a than_o other_o man_n the_o former_a they_o pretend_v not_o to_o and_o no_o wonder_n the_o late_a they_o do_v pretend_v to_o but_o if_o god_n supernatural_o have_v ascertain_v all_o pope_n of_o a_o infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n than_o he_o have_v do_v this_o either_o by_o his_o write_a word_n or_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n or_o both_o by_o which_o it_o must_v to_o we_o be_v prove_v but_o he_o have_v do_v it_o neither_o by_o his_o write_a word_n nor_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o tradition_n they_o must_v show_v it_o we_o either_o in_o certain_a monument_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o write_v but_o that_o they_o can_v do_v or_o else_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o which_o concern_v all_o their_o salvation_n must_v be_v deliver_v to_o all_o but_o this_o they_o can_v show_v nay_o we_o show_v they_o the_o contrary_n that_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n on_o earth_n deny_v any_o such_o tradition_n and_o the_o most_o approve_a writer_n of_o the_o former_a age_n tell_v we_o the_o contrary_a and_o all_o take_v the_o pope_n as_o fallible_a so_o that_o they_o can_v give_v we_o one_o line_n of_o any_o one_o father_n or_o council_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o ever_o have_v such_o a_o conceit_n as_o they_o and_o if_o they_o will_v pretend_v to_o a_o private_a tradition_n which_o none_o but_o themselves_o have_v receive_v and_o be_v entrust_v with_o and_o so_o make_v themselves_o the_o absolute_a judge_n of_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o give_v we_o no_o proof_n but_o their_o own_o word_n we_o will_v believe_v they_o as_o fast_o as_o we_o can_v but_o we_o must_v desire_v they_o not_o to_o be_v too_o hasty_a with_o we_o and_o for_o the_o write_a word_n they_o can_v thence_o prove_v a_o grant_n of_o their_o infallibility_n 1._o because_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o their_o infallible_a judgement_n therefore_o we_o must_v know_v their_o judgement_n to_o be_v infallible_a first_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v know_v some_o other_o way_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n indeed_o here_o they_o have_v long_o tire_v themselves_o in_o their_o circle_n which_o some_o of_o they_o will_v hide_v by_o vain_a word_n if_o they_o can_v but_o holden_n and_o other_o of_o they_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v it_o and_o that_o they_o have_v no_o way_n out_o but_o by_o retire_v to_o the_o universal_a testimony_n or_o tradition_n as_o a_o infallible_a evidence_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o authoritative_a judgement_n or_o infallibility_n or_o private_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o their_o church_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o we_o call_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o infallibility_n they_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o this_o be_v plain_o to_o say_v that_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o
the_o ancient_a church_n do_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o other_o bishop_n condemn_a heresy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n so_o many_o a_o heresy_n be_v judge_v such_o by_o the_o faithful_a without_o any_o more_o interposition_n of_o the_o pope_n than_o another_o bishop_n have_v see_v thus_o how_o little_a their_o great_a champion_n have_v to_o say_v for_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n i_o can_v willing_o have_v look_v about_o i_o into_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o to_o see_v if_o they_o can_v say_v any_o more_o but_o that_o it_o be_v know_v that_o most_o of_o they_o tread_v the_o same_o path_n only_o i_o may_v not_o over_o pass_v the_o new_a way_n that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v take_v up_o of_o late_a to_o prove_v their_o infallibility_n and_o to_o avoid_v their_o common_a circle_n and_o this_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o jesuit_n late_a superficial_a answer_n to_o chill_a worth_n forsooth_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o they_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n from_o scripture_n it_o be_v but_o for_o our_o sake_n because_o we_o confess_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n but_o not_o of_o their_o church_n but_o when_o they_o go_v according_a to_o the_o true_a nature_n and_o order_n of_o the_o matter_n than_o they_o set_v the_o church_n before_o the_o scripture_n and_o independant_o of_o it_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o jesuit_n suppose_v to_o be_v knot_n be_v this_o because_o the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o scripture_n and_o because_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v first_o prove_v their_o own_o infallibility_n and_o from_o thence_o secondary_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o when_o we_o be_v in_o high_a expectation_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n by_o his_o argument_n which_o be_v independent_a of_o scripture_n and_o before_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o he_o tell_v ●s_a that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o like_a aagument_n as_o the_o apostle_n prove_v their_o infallibility_n which_o he_o thus_o enumerate_v so_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o like_a still_o continue_v argument_n and_o note_n of_o many_o great_a and_o manifest_a miracle_n sanctity_n suffering_n victory_n over_o all_o sort_n of_o enemy_n conversion_n of_o infidel_n all_o which_o note_n be_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o conspicuous_a and_o convince_a and_o shall_v be_v increase_a the_o long_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v and_o withal_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o miracle_n etc._n etc._n prove_v they_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o only_o in_o some_o or_o else_o we_o can_v know_v which_o those_o some_o be_v and_o what_o to_o believe_v and_o what_o not_o thus_o you_o have_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o new_a fundamental_o of_o the_o romish_a faith_n and_o of_o the_o famous_a confutation_n of_o chillingworth_n but_o all_o these_o knot_n be_v easy_o lose_v without_o cut_v yea_o shake_v they_o only_o and_o they_o fall_v loose_a like_o juggler_n knot_n 1._o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o doctrine_n by_o himself_o deliver_v in_o the_o flesh_n as_o it_o contain_v many_o thing_n superad_v to_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n baptist_n 2._o it_o be_v evident_a that_o christ_n himself_o gather_v his_o first_o gospel-church_n by_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n that_o be_v he_o draw_v they_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n by_o convince_a they_o that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n so_o that_o this_o his_o doctrine_n be_v before_o this_o his_o church_n 3._o we_o grant_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v apostle_n before_o themselves_o do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o apostle_n but_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n and_o preach_v by_o christ_n before_o they_o preach_v it_o 4._o we_o easy_o grant_v that_o both_o apostle_n and_o gospel_n be_v long_o before_o the_o write_n of_o this_o gospel_n which_o we_o call_v the_o holy_a scripture_n 5._o we_o grant_v that_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a work_n do_v sufficient_o prove_v not_o some_o only_a but_o all_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o his_o for_o though_o they_o confirm_v only_o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o execution_n of_o their_o commission_n yet_o see_v god_n will_v not_o have_v set_v to_o this_o seal_n if_o they_o have_v go_v beyond_o and_o against_o their_o commission_n therefore_o it_o also_o assure_v we_o that_o they_o keep_v close_o to_o it_o but_o this_o prove_v they_o not_o infallible_a before_o they_o receive_v that_o commission_n nor_o afterward_o in_o any_o point_n which_o they_o shall_v deliver_v as_o their_o private_a opinion_n which_o they_o father_v not_o on_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o infallible_a about_o christ_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n when_o they_o understand_v they_o not_o the_o disciple_n be_v not_o infallible_a about_o the_o acceptableness_n of_o infant_n to_o christ_n when_o they_o forbid_v they_o to_o be_v bring_v thomas_n be_v not_o infallible_a about_o christ_n resurrection_n when_o he_o believe_v it_o not_o peter_n be_v not_o infallible_a when_o he_o give_v christ_n that_o satanical_a council_n for_o which_o he_o be_v ●antum_fw-la non_fw-la almost_a excommunicate_v mat_n 16.22_o 23._o even_o present_o after_o the_o great_a promise_n to_o he_o nor_o when_o he_o deny_v that_o he_o know_v christ_n with_o curse_n and_o oath_n nor_o when_o he_o dissemble_v and_o barnabas_n with_o he_o gal._n 2._o 6._o we_o maintain_v that_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n thus_o seal_v by_o miracle_n and_o deliver_v in_o write_v to_o the_o church_n do_v carry_v with_o it_o a_o attestation_n from_o god_n of_o its_o infallibility_n if_o there_o be_v never_o more_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o my_o determination_n in_o a_o book_n entitle_v the_o vnreasonableness_n of_o infidelity_n 7._o it_o be_v this_o seal_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o preach_v by_o minister_n which_o convert_v man_n to_o christ_n and_o make_v they_o christian_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v in_o order_n before_o the_o present_a church_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o 8._o we_o deny_v and_o confident_o deny_v that_o god_n have_v commissioned_n the_o pope_n to_o do_v the_o work_n which_o he_o commissioned_n the_o apostle_n to_o do_v and_o give_v they_o the_o power_n of_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v that_o be_v to_o attest_v the_o work_n suffering_n resurrection_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o eye_n or_o ear_n witness_n of_o they_o from_o himself_o and_o to_o be_v the_o first_o promulgator_n of_o some_o of_o his_o law_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o to_o deliver_v down_o a_o infallible_a seal_a scripture_n to_o all_o succeed_a age_n and_o by_o the_o ordinary_a work_n of_o miracle_n to_o convince_v the_o unbelieving_a world_n let_v he_o show_v his_o commission_n for_o this_o apostleship_n if_o he_o will_v be_v believe_v 9_o we_o as_o confident_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o prophet_n or_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v that_o so_o they_o may_v infallible_o deliver_v we_o christ_n doctrine_n 10._o and_o they_o can_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v till_o we_o have_v some_o proof_n of_o it_o that_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o power_n of_o work_a miracle_n or_o be_v endow_v with_o a_o spirit_n of_o miracle_n or_o that_o they_o can_v convince_v those_o that_o deny_v the_o scripture_n by_o their_o own_o miracle_n that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o that_o ever_o they_o confirm_v those_o point_n by_o miracle_n which_o be_v now_o call_v popery_n thus_o much_o to_o let_v the_o jesuit_n know_v where_o we_o differ_v from_o he_o and_o now_o to_o the_o point_n we_o call_v for_o his_o proof_n which_o he_o here_o mention_v to_o we_o in_o general_a name_n non_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o non_fw-la apparere_fw-la be_v to_o we_o all_o one_o give_v we_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o your_o seal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n by_o miracle_n or_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n by_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v the_o scripture_n and_o their_o preach_n and_o then_o you_o shall_v carry_v the_o cause_n and_o we_o profess_v that_o we_o will_v rejoice_o pass_v into_o your_o tent_n and_o proclaim_v you_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o we_o live_v among_o you_o and_o so_o do_v our_o father_n before_o we_o and_o hear_v you_o prate_v and_o boast_v of_o miracle_n when_o we_o can_v see_v that_o ever_o you_o do_v so_o much_o as_o make_v a_o dead_a flea_n alive_a again_o nor_o can_v see_v the_o least_o miracle_n from_o you_o if_o we_o will_v
forbear_v to_o reckon_v up_o any_o more_o because_o the_o reader_n may_v find_v it_o do_v so_o full_o already_o in_o so_o many_o and_o the_o excuse_n of_o bellarmine_n by_o chamier_n and_o many_o other_o so_o full_o answer_v and_o because_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o far_o out_o of_o question_n 1._o that_o nothing_o but_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o impudence_n can_v deny_v it_o it_o be_v so_o common_a a_o thing_n for_o pope_n to_o contradict_v and_o repeal_v one_o another_o decree_n that_o their_o platina_n in_o vita_fw-la stephani_fw-la say_v follow_v pope_n do_v always_o either_o infringe_v or_o whole_o abrogate_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o former_a pope_n erasmus_n annot._n in_o 1_o cor._n 7._o 104._o say_v pope_n john_n the_o 22._o and_o pope_n nicolas_n be_v contrary_a one_o to_o another_o in_o their_o whole_a degree_n and_o that_o in_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o business_n of_o faith_n lyra_n in_o mat._n 16._o say_v that_o some_o pope_n have_v apostatise_v occam_n show_v that_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o docretal_n do_v savour_n of_o heresy_n one_o pope_n teach_v emanuel_n king_n of_o portugal_n to_o marry_v two_o sister_n 2._o another_o teach_v our_o king_n henry_n 8_o to_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n and_o even_o pope_n paul_n 4._o with_o his_o council_n of_o trent_n decree_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o allow_v those_o degree_n to_o marry_v together_o which_o god_n in_o leviticus_n have_v forbid_v and_o to_o forbid_v those_o which_o god_n have_v allow_v which_o be_v a_o judicial_a error_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n as_o many_o more_o in_o that_o council_n be_v but_o i_o will_v add_v another_o argument_n like_o the_o last_n which_o be_v as_o follow_v argu._n 4._o if_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a than_o all_o the_o write_n of_o all_o pope_n be_v of_o infallible_a verity_n but_o all_o the_o write_n of_o all_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o infallible_a verity_n therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o infallible_a the_o consequence_n of_o the_o major_a proposition_n will_v be_v deny_v by_o bellarmine_n unless_o it_o be_v limit_v to_o such_o write_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n do_v teach_v the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n though_o indeed_o they_o will_v never_o prove_v he_o infallible_a in_o teach_v the_o church_n while_o they_o confess_v he_o fallible_a in_o his_o own_o judgement_n yet_o let_v we_o for_o disputation_n sake_n grant_v they_o this_o but_o then_o for_o the_o proof_n also_o of_o the_o minor_a i_o proceed_v thus_o all_o the_o theological_a write_n of_o leo_n gregory_n gelasius_n nicolus_n 1_o adrian_z 6._o and_o other_o pope_n be_v not_o infallible_a but_o all_o these_o write_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n therefore_o all_o the_o pope_n write_n which_o be_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o infallible_a i_o think_v no_o ●ober_a papist_n will_v maintain_v that_o all_o these_o write_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o they_o be_v write_v about_o matter_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v or_o do_v for_o our_o salvation_n be_v evident_a to_o any_o man_n that_o read_v they_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o write_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n to_o what_o end_n be_v they_o write_v do_v pope_n publish_v write_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o not_o to_o teach_v the_o church_n by_o they_o if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v but_o to_o teach_v part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v 1._o what_o part_n be_v it_o and_o where_o be_v the_o limitation_n express_v for_o example_n of_o gregory_n dialogue_n moral_n de_fw-fr officio_fw-la pastoris_fw-la etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o pope_n in_o a_o provincial_a council_n may_v teach_v but_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o he_o be_v there_o infallible_a moreover_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n write_n be_v infallible_a from_o his_o gift_n of_o infallibility_n than_o they_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o scripture_n nay_o what_o be_v they_o but_o god_n word_n and_o all_o pope_n be_v apostle_n or_o prophet_n that_o be_v inspire_v man_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o but_o that_o be_v false_a therefore_o obj._n these_o write_n come_v not_o from_o the_o pope_n as_o pope_n but_o as_o a_o private_a doctor_n and_o so_o he_o may_v err_v answ_n can_v the_o pope_n lie_v by_o his_o relation_n when_o he_o be_v teach_v the_o church_n &_o do_v it_o as_o a_o mere_a private_a doctor_n when_o he_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a private_a doctor_n it_o be_v a_o hard_a straight_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v in_o to_o tell_v we_o and_o themselves_o when_o the_o pope_n teach_v as_o a_o private_a doctor_n and_o when_o as_o pope_n they_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o be_v agree_v about_o this_o among_o they_o and_o all_o that_o we_o have_v for_o it_o be_v but_o the_o private_a word_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o some_o such_o disputer_n but_o we_o have_v no_o scripture_n canon_n or_o decretal_a to_o tell_v we_o how_o we_o shall_v know_v one_o from_o the_o other_o if_o therefore_o we_o have_v no_o infallible_a mean_n to_o know_v when_o the_o pope_n teach_v as_o a_o pope_n and_o when_o as_o private_a doctor_n than_o we_o have_v no_o infallible_a mean_n to_o know_v when_o he_o teach_v infallible_o but_o the_o former_a be_v most_o certain_a therefore_o so_o be_v the_o late_a and_o so_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a it_o will_v do_v we_o no_o good_a if_o they_o draw_v forth_o rational_a probability_n and_o make_v every_o private_a man_n judge_n of_o they_o they_o may_v as_o well_o warrant_v man_n by_o such_o mean_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o so_o much_o abhor_v argu._n 5._o if_o general_a council_n be_v infallible_a or_o to_o be_v credit_v than_o the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a but_o according_a to_o one_o party_n of_o the_o papist_n a_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a the_o consequence_n of_o the_o major_n be_v easy_o prove_v 1._o because_o general_a council_n have_v differ_v from_o the_o pope_n 2._o yea_o they_o have_v depose_v divers_a pope_n and_o that_o for_o heresy_n charge_v divers_a article_n against_o they_o as_o also_o for_o wickedness_n of_o life_n the_o council_n at_o pisa_n depose_v two_o pope_n at_o once_o gregory_z the_o 12._o and_o benedict_n the_o 13._o and_o in_o the_o tenor_n of_o their_o deprivation_n call_v they_o notorious_a schismatics_n heretic_n depart_v from_o the_o faith_n scandalize_a the_o whole_a church_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n unworthy_a the_o papacy_n 3._o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 37._o depose_v the_o same_o pope_n benedict_n again_o command_v all_o man_n to_o esteem_v he_o as_o a_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n the_o same_o council_n depose_v also_o john_n 23._o accuse_v for_o hold_v const_n and_o defend_v as_o his_o judgement_n that_o there_o be_v no_o eternal_a life_n nor_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n nor_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o so_o be_v a_o stark_a infidel_n concern_v this_o pope_n i_o will_v desire_v the_o impartial_a reader_n to_o observe_v what_o a_o miserable_a answer_n bellarmine_n be_v put_v to_o give_v and_o whether_o it_o do_v not_o plain_o give_v up_o their_o whole_a cause_n his_o word_n be_v these_o de_fw-la pontif._n li._n 4._o c._n 14._o responde●_n johannem_fw-la 23._o non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la pontificem_fw-la omnino_fw-la certum_fw-la &_o indubitatum_fw-la proinde_fw-la non_fw-la necessario_fw-la esse_fw-la defendendum_fw-la erant_fw-la enim_fw-la eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la tres_fw-la qui_fw-la pontifices_fw-la haberi_fw-la volebant_fw-la gregorius_n 12._o benedictus_fw-la 13._o &_o johannes_n 23._o nec_fw-la poterat_fw-la facile_fw-la judicari_fw-la quis_fw-la corum_fw-la verus_fw-la ac_fw-la legitimus_fw-la esset_fw-la pontifex_fw-la cum_fw-la non_fw-la deessent_fw-la singulis_fw-la doctissimi_fw-la patroni_fw-la that_o be_v i_o answer_v that_o john_n the_o 23._o be_v not_o a_o pope_n altogether_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o he_o be_v defend_v for_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v three_o that_o will_v be_v take_v for_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 12._o benedict_n the_o 13._o and_o john_n 23._o and_o it_o can_v not_o easy_o be_v judge_v which_o of_o they_o be_v true_a and_o lawful_a pope_n see_v there_o be_v not_o want_v to_o each_o of_o they_o most_o learned_a patron_n so_o far_o bellarmine_n where_o observe_v 1._o that_o even_o learned_a man_n yea_o general_a council_n and_o the_o church_n may_v be_v uncertain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o inquire_v then_o whether_o they_o be_v not_o uncertain_a that_o the_o roman_a succession_n be_v interrupt_v and_o uncertain_a at_o that_o time_n whether_o god_n have_v any_o word_n or_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v certain_a to_o they_o that_o the_o church_n fail_v not_o when_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o
head_n and_o whether_o their_o head_n and_o so_o their_o church_n be_v then_o visible_a or_o invisible_a when_o they_o can_v so_o hardly_o be_v know_v and_o note_v that_o bellarmine_n do_v disclaim_v the_o com-popes_n with_o this_o john_n 23._o and_o say_v elsewhere_o that_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n they_o have_v bring_v their_o glorious_a head_n church_n and_o infallibility_n to_o a_o fair_a pass_n beside_o this_o the_o general_n council_n at_o basill_n do_v short_o after_o depose_v pope_n eugenius_n the_o forth_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o rebel_n against_o the_o holy_a canon_n a_o notorious_a disturber_n and_o scandalizer_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n a_o simonist_n and_o a_o perjure_a wretch_n incorrigible_a a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o obstinate_a heretic_n they_o to_o this_o bellarmine_n have_v not_o a_o word_n to_o say_v but_o only_o that_o the_o council_n do_v he_o wrong_n and_o at_o lansanna_n undo_v their_o act_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v content_a to_o grant_v that_o 1._o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v which_o he_o maintain_v 2._o and_o that_o a_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n and_o to_o be_v depose_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o be_v the_o papist_n force_v to_o yield_v we_o thus_o much_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v then_o from_o bellarmine_n or_o any_o papist_n survive_v he_o whether_o that_o general_a council_n do_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o be_v heretic_n or_o not_o for_o that_o their_o judgement_n if_o they_o do_v so_o err_v then_o where_o be_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o church_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o its_o privilege_n which_o they_o so_o boast_v of_o when_o its_o representative_a body_n a_o general_n council_n be_v heretic_n as_o think_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v fallible_a but_o if_o they_o err_v not_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o be_v no_o heretic_n 1._o then_o its_o seem_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n be_v no_o fundamental_a 2._o then_o it_o seem_v we_o be_v no_o heretic_n neither_o for_o deny_v that_o which_o general_a council_n of_o papist_n pretend_v by_o they_o to_o be_v general_n have_v deny_v 3_o nay_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v angry_a with_o man_n for_o err_a such_o a_o error_n as_o they_o account_v it_o which_o their_o own_o general_a council_n may_v one_o after_o another_o err_v argu._n 6._o from_o the_o papist_n own_o open_v know_v confession_n if_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v confess_v both_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o be_v fallible_a they_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o blame_v we_o for_o affirm_v the_o samewhich_v they_o confess_v but_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v confess_v both_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n to_o be_v fallible_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n i_o do_v not_o mean_v that_o all_o the_o papist_n confess_v it_o of_o both_o but_o one_o part_n of_o they_o confess_v it_o of_o one_o and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o other_o of_o they_o bellarmine_n and_o his_o fellow_n jesuit_n with_o the_o italian_a party_n do_v confess_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o french_a and_o venetian_a papist_n with_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o their_o party_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o teach_v heresy_n so_o that_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o one_o half_a of_o they_o a_o council_n may_v err_v and_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o other_o half_a the_o pope_n may_v err_v if_o any_o imagine_v that_o though_o both_o may_v err_v dis-junct_o yet_o not_o conjunct_o i_o shall_v only_o now_o say_v that_o the_o concession_n that_o each_o of_o they_o dis-junct_o may_v err_v destroy_v the_o force_n of_o all_o those_o argument_n which_o be_v bring_v for_o their_o infallibility_n and_o therefore_o will_v prove_v it_o of_o they_o also_o conjunct_o but_o we_o have_v yet_o further_o proof_n argu._n 7._o if_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o popery_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o farthel_n of_o error_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n to_o corrupt_v the_o christian_a religion_n among_o they_o then_o certain_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n may_v err_v but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a therefore_o so_o be_v the_o consequent_a all_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o antecedent_n and_o it_o be_v prove_v before_o in_o the_o former_a disputation_n and_o full_o by_o our_o writer_n against_o they_o i_o shall_v thither_o for_o brevity_n refer_v you_o what_o impudence_n be_v it_o to_o introduce_v such_o abundance_n of_o corruption_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n and_o after_o all_o this_o to_o say_v they_o can_v err_v when_o they_o have_v so_o plague_v the_o church_n with_o their_o error_n they_o teach_v man_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o speak_v and_o hear_v they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o worship_v the_o bread_n with_o divine_a worship_n to_o receive_v only_o the_o bread_n when_o christ_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o cup_n and_o so_o do_v abolish_v one_o half_a of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o adore_v the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n they_o plead_v for_o justification_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o own_o work_n as_o have_v a_o condignity_n of_o the_o reward_n they_o make_v the_o church_n a_o new_a thing_n by_o make_v a_o new_a head_n and_o centre_n of_o unity_n and_o a_o new_a and_o daily_o mutable_a religion_n in_o a_o word_n they_o poison_v both_o church_n policy_n worship_n and_o doctrine_n by_o their_o error_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v they_o stand_v to_o it_o that_o they_o can_v err_v like_o a_o leper_n that_o shall_v maintain_v he_o can_v possible_o be_v leprous_a when_o he_o be_v cover_v with_o it_o already_o or_o like_o a_o swear_n or_o drunken_a beast_n that_o shall_v swear_v that_o he_o never_o do_v swear_v nor_o be_v drink_v nor_o ever_o can_v be_v when_o he_o lie_v drink_v in_o the_o dirt_n and_o breath_n out_o his_o oath_n what_o need_v any_o impartial_a diseern_v man_n any_o other_o proof_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a then_o actual_o to_o observe_v the_o swarm_n of_o their_o error_n that_o have_v trouble_v the_o church_n argu._n 8._o if_o the_o pope_n themselves_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o if_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v they_o be_v not_o infallible_a but_o either_o they_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o not_o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v what_o need_v there_o any_o more_o proof_n if_o they_o be_v what_o need_v there_o also_o any_o more_o proof_n when_o they_o themselves_o confess_v themselves_o fallible_a not_o a_o pope_n for_o above_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n do_v ever_o pretend_v to_o infallibility_n as_o can_v be_v prove_v pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o best_a that_o ever_o they_o have_v this_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v write_v his_o judgement_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o i_o think_v he_o be_v like_a to_o know_v himself_o as_o to_o his_o infirmity_n than_o any_o of_o his_o flatterer_n be_v his_o word_n be_v these_o de_fw-fr sacram._n confirm_v art_n 4._o ad_fw-la fin_n dico_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la romanam_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la caput_fw-la ejus_fw-la puta_fw-la pontifex_fw-la certum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la possit_fw-la errare_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la tangunt_fw-la fidem_fw-la here_o sin_n per_fw-la svam_fw-la determinationem_fw-la aut_fw-la decretalem_fw-la asserendo_fw-la plures_fw-la enim_fw-la fue●unt_fw-la pontifices_fw-la romani_fw-la haeretici_fw-la that_o be_v i_o say_v that_o if_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v mean_v the_o head_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n the_o pope_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o may_v err_v even_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o touch_v the_o faith_n by_o assert_v heresy_n by_o his_o determination_n or_o decretal_a for_o there_o have_v many_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v heretic_n thus_o you_o hear_v what_o a_o pope_n say_v of_o himself_o argu._n 9_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a then_o either_o it_o be_v his_o mind_n in_o believe_v or_o his_o tongue_n in_o speak_v or_o his_o pen_n in_o writing_n that_o be_v infallible_a but_o it_o be_v neither_o his_o mind_n nor_o tongue_n nor_o pen_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o infallible_a 1._o that_o his_o mind_n be_v not_o infallible_a in_o point_n of_o belief_n be_v confess_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o one_o part_n of_o they_o say_v he_o may_v err_v and_o the_o other_o maintain_v that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n and_o that_o many_o have_v be_v so_o that_o his_o tongue_n and_o pen_n be_v not_o infallible_a when_o his_o understanding_n err_v be_v plain_a 1._o in_o that_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v be_v infallible_a in_o dissemble_v and_o god_n be_v feign_v to_o promise_v a_o man_n to_o keep_v his_o tongue_n from_o error_n when_o he_o
be_v credit_v as_o christian_n before_o they_o believe_v that_o christianity_n itself_o be_v of_o credit_n q_o 3_o be_v there_o any_o man_n breathe_v that_o can_v bring_v sufficient_a argument_n to_o prove_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n 2._o and_o that_o this_o church_n be_v infallible_a 3._o and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o papist_n be_v this_o church_n before_o their_o hearer_n have_v receive_v or_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o they_o can_v why_o have_v they_o not_o fall_v close_o to_o work_v in_o this_o necessary_a point_n when_o they_o know_v how_o much_o it_o will_v do_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o whole_a if_o they_o pretend_v such_o antecedent_n proof_n by_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n prove_v the_o doctrine_n by_o i_o have_v show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o pretence_n against_o knot_n before_o and_o we_o must_v still_o desire_v they_o if_o it_o be_v miracle_n that_o be_v their_o first_o witness_n to_o let_v we_o see_v or_o have_v certain_a proof_n of_o those_o miracle_n we_o protest_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o we_o be_v hearty_o willing_a to_o see_v they_o and_o know_v of_o they_o if_o they_o be_v true_a but_o though_o we_o have_v live_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o papist_n all_o our_o life_n yet_o can_v we_o never_o to_o this_o day_n see_v any_o such_o matter_n from_o they_o nor_o hear_v so_o much_o as_o of_o any_o probable_a proof_n of_o any_o and_o will_v they_o have_v we_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o salvation_n to_o believe_v every_o prate_a boaster_n that_o will_v tell_v we_o of_o miracle_n and_o show_v we_o no_o such_o thing_n nor_o any_o proof_n of_o they_o quest_n 4._o whether_o those_o that_o do_v not_o go_v this_o most_o absurd_a way_n of_o prove_v their_o church_n infallible_a to_o a_o infidel_n that_o yet_o believe_v not_o god_n word_n and_o so_o by_o mean_n antecedent_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n must_v not_o unavoidable_o confess_v that_o god_n word_n must_v be_v first_o believe_v before_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n infallibility_n or_o authority_n and_o consequent_o our_o faith_n depend_v not_o in_o they_o nor_o be_v resolve_v into_o they_o or_o else_o they_o be_v inextricable_o ensnare_v in_o the_o popish_a circle_n and_o contradict_o do_v make_v two_o primo_fw-la credenda_fw-la the_o church_n or_o pope_n the_o first_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v first_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o do_v not_o hold_v vane_n knot_n and_o other_o of_o they_o see_v this_o who_o therefore_o shun_v the_o circle_n and_o use_v not_o the_o old_a shift_n of_o becanus_n and_o other_o to_o blind_v the_o eye_n of_o those_o that_o see_v they_o in_o it_o whether_o i_o wrong_v they_o h._n holden_n himself_o a_o englishman_n and_o doctor_n of_o paris_n shall_v be_v judge_n who_o thus_o commend_v his_o own_o new_a devise_v foundation_n or_o resolution_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o his_o divini_fw-la fid_fw-we analy_n li._n 1._o c._n 9_o pag._n 180._o exit_fw-la quibus_fw-la patet_fw-la ha●●_n christianae_n fidei_fw-la analysim_fw-la haud_fw-la in●idore_fw-la in_o labyrinthum_fw-la vulgarem_fw-la &_o circular_a perfugium_fw-la quo_fw-la solent_fw-la theologi_fw-la passim_fw-la involvi_fw-la qui_fw-la fidei_fw-la resolutionem_fw-la juxta_fw-la communem_fw-la &_o parum_fw-la attente_fw-la examinatam_fw-la opini●●●●_n conferuunt_fw-la as_o effingunt_fw-la quarenti_fw-la namque_fw-la und●_n noverint_fw-la scripturam_fw-la esse_fw-la revelatum_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la respondent_fw-la ex_fw-la universae_fw-la consentientis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la assertione_fw-la quibus_fw-la si_fw-la iterum_fw-la fiet_fw-la interrogatis_fw-la unde_fw-la sciverint_fw-la unanimeus_a hanc_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la assertionem_fw-la esse_fw-la ab_fw-la errore_fw-la liberam_fw-la seu_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la respondent_fw-la ex_fw-la revelat●_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la audentes_fw-la fidem_fw-la divinam_fw-la in_o certitudine_fw-la &_o evidentia_fw-la naturali_fw-la fundare_fw-la in_fw-la circulum_fw-la hunc_fw-la inevitabiliter_fw-la illabuntur_fw-la &_o in_o orbem_fw-la turpissime_fw-la saltantes_fw-la fidem_fw-la quam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la prima_fw-la ratio_fw-la format_n &_o efficit_fw-la rationis_fw-la experem_fw-la reddunt_fw-la voluntque_fw-la homines_fw-la rationales_fw-la mentis_fw-la ac_fw-la judicii_fw-la partioipes_fw-la in_fw-la fidei_fw-la assensu_fw-la certiores_fw-la esse_fw-la quam_fw-la vel_fw-la ratio_fw-la postulat_fw-la vel_fw-la approbat_fw-la hasitant_n quip_n theologi_fw-la quidam_fw-la asseverare_fw-la &_o agnoscere_fw-la quod_fw-la omne_fw-la argumenta_fw-la etiam_fw-la firmissima_fw-la omnesque_fw-la rationes_fw-la item_n evidentissimae_fw-la quibus_fw-la universam_fw-la fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la traditionem_fw-la solidam_fw-la erroris_fw-la immunem_fw-la &_o infallibilem_fw-la esse_fw-la demonstramus_fw-la adeo_fw-la veritatem_fw-la hanc_fw-la evincant_a ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la prorsue_v subsit_fw-la aberrationis_fw-la facultas_fw-la ideoque_fw-la ●pinantu●_n christianorum_fw-la a●imos_fw-la adhuc_fw-la ita_fw-la vacillantes_fw-la &_o fluctuantes_fw-la derelictos_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la privatum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la &_o singularem_fw-la instinctum_fw-la pernecessarium_fw-la autument_fw-la quo_fw-la omni_fw-la fidei_fw-la christianae_n assensui_fw-la certitudo_fw-la &_o infallibilitas_fw-la divina_fw-la at_o ajunt_fw-la attribuatur_fw-la nos_fw-la antem_fw-la levibu●_n hisce_fw-la &_o voluntariis_fw-la opinationibus_fw-la fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la &_o religionis_fw-la christianae_n certitudinem_fw-la &_o soliditatem_fw-la inniti_fw-la aut_fw-la fundari_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la judicamus_fw-la that_o be_v in_o english_a from_o hence_o its_o evident_a that_o this_o resolution_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n do_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o common_a labyrinth_n and_o circular_a shift_n in_o which_o divine_n be_v common_o wont_a to_o be_v involve_v who_o do_v frame_v and_o fashion_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o common_a and_o unheedful_o examine_v opinion_n for_o when_o they_o be_v ask_v how_o they_o know_v then_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n they_o answer_n by_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o universal_a consent_a church_n and_o if_o they_o be_v again_o ask_v how_o they_o know_v that_o this_o unanimous_a assertion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v free_a from_o error_n or_o infallible_a they_o answer_v by_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o not_o dare_v to_o found_v divine_a faith_n in_o natural_a certaintainty_n and_o evidence_n they_o unavidable_o slide_v into_o this_o circle_n most_o filthy_o dance_v in_o a_o ring_n or_o round_o the_o faith_n which_o the_o first_o reason_n form_v and_o effect_v they_o make_v void_a of_o reason_n and_o will_v have_v reasonable_a man_n who_o have_v understanding_n and_o judgement_n to_o be_v more_o certain_a in_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n than_o reason_n do_v either_o require_v or_o allow_v for_o some_o divine_n etc._n etc._n hear_v you_o see_v a_o learned_a papist_n confess_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v common_o entangle_v in_o this_o circle_n and_o filthy_o dance_v in_o a_o round_a and_o will_v make_v our_o faith_n a_o unreasonable_a thing_n let_v knot_n note_v this_o that_o will_v make_v chillingworth_n a_o socinian_n and_o a_o infidel_n for_o make_v faith_n a_o reasanable_a act_n and_o let_v the_o common_a sort_n of_o papist_n note_v this_o that_o deny_v faith_n to_o have_v any_o evidence_n and_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v according_a to_o this_o man_n judgement_n on_o what_o foundation_n the_o generality_n of_o papist_n do_v build_v their_o faith_n and_o what_o a_o faith_n it_o be_v that_o have_v such_o a_o foundation_n yea_o and_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v whether_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o papist_n begin_v not_o to_o change_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o how_o near_o they_o begin_v to_o draw_v to_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o this_o same_o doctor_n do_v well_o disprove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n pag._n 179._o say_v own_o quidem_fw-la episcopi_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la successores_fw-la sunt_fw-la apostolos_fw-la veer_fw-mi ade●_n confirmatos_fw-la in_o gratia_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ut_fw-la infallibiles_fw-la omnino_fw-la seu_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la christiana_n tradenda_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la erroris_fw-la periculo_fw-la immunes_fw-la fuerint_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nunquid_fw-la ergo_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ab_fw-la errore_fw-la liberi_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quidem_fw-la apostolis_n revelata_fw-la fuisse_fw-la secreta_fw-la caelestia_fw-la iissque_fw-la ut_fw-la nec_fw-la decipi_fw-la nec_fw-la hallucinari_fw-la possent_fw-la divina_fw-la &_o extraordinaria_fw-la via_fw-la donatum_fw-la esse_fw-la certissime_fw-la tenemus_fw-la nun●_n quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la vel_fw-la summo_fw-la pontifici_fw-la vel_fw-la caeteris_fw-la episcopis_fw-la haec_fw-la sunt_fw-la divinitus_fw-la concessa_fw-la privilegia_fw-la that_o be_v all_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o confirm_v in_o grace_n that_o they_o be_v altogether_o infallible_a or_o free_a from_o all_o danger_n of_o error_n in_o deliver_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n this_o the_o universal_a church_n acknowledge_v but_o be_v all_o bishop_n therefore_o free_a from_o error_n we_o certain_o hold_v that_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o heavenly_a secret_n be_v reveal_v and_o that_o by_o a_o divine_a and_o
whether_o then_o must_v poor_a pagan_n have_v recourse_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o infallibility_n survive_v in_o other_o pastor_n than_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o be_v infallible_a but_o other_o as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o be_v not_o the_o church_n faith_n resolve_v into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o woman_n in_o pope_n joane_v day_n i_o know_v the_o shift_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o onuphrius_n to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o story_n of_o pope_n joan_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n florimondus_fw-la remondus_fw-la be_v common_a on_o this_o subject_n but_o the_o case_n be_v out_o of_o question_n thus_o far_o that_o we_o have_v near_o fifty_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n especial_o old_a historian_n that_o give_v we_o the_o history_n of_o this_o pope_n joan_n as_o platina_n in_o vit_fw-mi joh._n 8._o sabellicus_n enead_n l._n 1._o antoninus_n archbishop_n of_o florence_n part_n 2._o li._n 16._o chalcondyla_fw-fr li._n 6._o marianus_n scotus_n martinus_n polonus_n fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la nauclerus_fw-la volaterane_n textor_n caryon_n sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la mat._n palmerius_n massaeus_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o marvel_v why_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v so_o industrious_a in_o refel_v it_o as_o if_o their_o cause_n lie_v more_o on_o this_o then_o other_o thing_n if_o a_o conjurer_n a_o common_a whoremonger_n a_o murderer_n a_o simonist_n a_o heretic_n may_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o faith_n why_o may_v not_o a_o woman_n have_v christ_n lay_v more_o on_o the_o sex_n then_o on_o all_o these_o special_o if_o she_o have_v but_o keep_v herself_o honest_a i_o shall_v have_v think_v joan_n have_v be_v better_a than_o john_n the_o 22._o or_o 23._o and_o many_o another_o that_o yet_o be_v of_o the_o more_o worthy_a gender_n quest_n 19_o and_o further_o i_o will_v know_v if_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v consume_v with_o fire_n or_o the_o popedom_n remove_v from_o that_o sea_n which_o bellarmine_n confess_v it_o be_v not_o impossile_a to_o be_v do_v where_o then_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o romish_a faith_n if_o they_o say_v that_o this_o can_v never_o be_v and_o that_o christ_n promise_n imply_v the_o preservation_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n i_o answer_v 1._o it_o will_v be_v long_o before_o they_o will_v give_v we_o any_o proof_n of_o that_o 2._o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v the_o contrary_n 3._o let_v the_o end_n determine_v it_o but_o if_o they_o say_v that_o infallibility_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o place_n but_o to_o the_o person_n who_o shall_v be_v peter_n successor_n i_o answer_v we_o think_v hitherto_o that_o to_o be_v peter_n successor_n and_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v all_o one_o with_o they_o if_o another_o man_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v peter_n successor_n then_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v who_o have_v succeed_v he_o all_o this_o while_n why_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n jerusalem_n ephesus_n or_o other_o place_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n special_o why_o not_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o inherit_v his_o first_o chair_n i_o doubt_v if_o rome_n be_v extinct_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n or_o cullen_n or_o vienna_n or_o rheims_n or_o paris_n or_o any_o other_o shall_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o the_o old_a patriarch_n but_o their_o neighbour_n bishop_n will_v much_o contradict_v it_o and_o the_o world_n will_v be_v at_o a_o great_a loss_n to_o find_v the_o popish_a faith_n or_o infallible_a head_n quest_n 20._o last_o i_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o papist_n that_o have_v any_o conscience_n leave_v and_o have_v read_v the_o father_n or_o history_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o curche_n in_o those_o time_n do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o gospel_n on_o the_o credit_n of_o peter_n or_o be_v they_o send_v by_o he_o or_o do_v they_o receive_v their_o authority_n from_o he_o do_v they_o find_v that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n or_o any_o follow_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n do_v take_v such_o a_o course_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o faith_n as_o first_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o clergy_n be_v infallible_a and_o therefore_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n or_o christian_a faith_n because_o they_o say_v its_o true_a be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o learned_a papist_n can_v serious_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o ancient_a way_n of_o believe_v do_v they_o think_v in_o good_a sadness_n that_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o this_o mean_n sure_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o distract_v by_o their_o prejudice_n and_o faction_n do_v they_o read_v in_o clemens_n rom._n or_o alexandrin_n in_o ignatius_n justin_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n or_o any_o other_o of_o those_o time_n that_o the_o preacher_n that_o go_v abroad_o the_o world_n to_o persuade_v man_n to_o christianity_n do_v ever_o use_v this_o popish_a medium_fw-la or_o go_v this_o way_n to_o work_v do_v they_o first_o preach_v the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n before_o they_o preach_v christ_n or_o scripture_n do_v they_o first_o preach_v man_n into_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o then_o bring_v they_o to_o christ_n or_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o o_o that_o these_o man_n will_v but_o show_v we_o in_o what_o history_n we_o may_v find_v the_o report_n of_o this_o way_n of_o preach_v or_o tell_v we_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v by_o this_o argument_n how_o many_o and_o large_a oration_n apology_n and_o other_o discourse_n do_v we_o find_v in_o the_o father_n write_n for_o the_o christian_a faith_n to_o convince_v the_o unbelieving_a world_n in_o clem_n alexand._n tertullian_n origen_n athenagoras_n tatianus_n minutius_n faelix_fw-la arnobius_n lactantius_n greg_n nazianz._n nissen_n athanasius_n basil_n eusebius_n cyril_n alexandr_n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o and_o can_v any_o man_n of_o brain_n imagine_v that_o if_o the_o infallibility_n ●ea_n or_o but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o scripture_n or_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v receive_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o church_n that_o all_o these_o father_n and_o other_o defender_n and_o propagator_n of_o the_o faith_n will_v have_v quite_o forget_v and_o leave_v out_o this_o great_a and_o necessary_a point_n what!_o will_v all_o the_o preacher_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n overlook_v and_o omit_v the_o very_a foundation_n into_o which_o all_o man_n faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v undoubted_o if_o this_o have_v be_v then_o think_v to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o papist_n now_o teach_v we_o shall_v have_v have_v the_o first_o part_n and_o a_o great_a if_o not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o tho●e_a apology_n and_o discourse_n lay_v out_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n what_o man_n will_v go_v to_o evince_v a_o whole_a system_a of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o quite_o forget_v that_o medium_n by_o which_o only_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v prove_v will_v not_o this_o have_v find_v one_o place_n at_o least_o if_o not_o the_o chief_a among_o eusebius_n his_o preparation_n or_o demonstration_n where_o be_v there_o ever_o in_o all_o antiquity_n find_v such_o a_o argument_n as_o this_o to_o convince_v a_o unbeliever_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n determine_v be_v true_a but_o they_o do_v determine_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o christianity_n be_v the_o right_a religion_n therefore_o this_o be_v true_a nay_o further_o consider_v if_o this_o kind_n of_o argue_v have_v be_v then_o use_v may_v not_o any_o man_n see_v that_o have_v not_o renounce_v his_o wit_n that_o the_o heathen_n will_v have_v sore_o stick_v at_o the_o major_a proposition_n and_o that_o it_o will_v have_v meet_v with_o so_o many_o objection_n and_o contradiction_n from_o they_o that_o sure_o we_o shall_v have_v find_v some_o of_o they_o remember_v to_o posterity_n do_v julian_n never_o stick_v at_o this_o very_a principle_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o roman_a infallibility_n who_o stick_v at_o so_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o faith_n itself_o or_o have_v cyril_n alexandr_n and_o other_o quite_o forget_v to_o mention_v these_o among_o the_o rest_n
of_o his_o contradiction_n do_v it_o never_o come_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o celsus_n porphyry_n or_o any_o other_o unbeliever_n that_o we_o read_v of_o to_o doubt_v of_o and_o object_n against_o this_o fundamental_a infallibility_n o_o what_o a_o incredible_a thing_n be_v this_o yea_o and_o yet_o the_o more_o incredible_a will_v it_o appear_v if_o you_o consider_v that_o all_o the_o whole_a cause_n between_o the_o christian_n and_o the_o infidel_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a conceit_n must_v depend_v upon_o this_o one_o point_n of_o their_o infallibility_n for_o what_o man_n will_v be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o contradict_v the_o church_n if_o he_o once_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a can_v they_o think_v that_o all_o the_o learned_a heathen_n be_v such_o fool_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v therefore_o that_o their_o first_o stop_n must_v be_v at_o the_o major_a proposition_n even_o at_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o therefore_o certain_o their_o most_o objection_n will_v have_v be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a doctor_n labour_n will_v have_v be_v in_o the_o defend_n of_o it_o but_o that_o its_o certain_a they_o then_o believe_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o the_o church_n be_v at_o that_o time_n utter_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o present_a romish_a faith_n moreover_o if_o this_o popish_a foundation_n have_v be_v then_o know_v do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o father_n will_v not_o have_v appeal_v to_o rome_n for_o a_o decision_n of_o all_o their_o perplex_v controversy_n what_o ready_a way_n to_o have_v silence_v all_o gainsayers_a and_o end_v all_o strife_n and_o to_o have_v save_v the_o labour_n of_o so_o many_o volume_n then_o to_o have_v bestow_v their_o pain_n with_o all_o dissenter_n upon_o this_o one_o point_n alone_o that_o rome_n be_v infallible_a and_o then_o have_v send_v they_o thither_o for_o satisfaction_n in_o all_o the_o rest_n common_a reason_n must_v needs_o have_v tell_v man_n of_o such_o principle_n that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n but_o do_v we_o find_v that_o this_o way_n be_v take_v how_o come_v we_o then_o to_o have_v so_o many_o volume_n of_o the_o father_n controversal_a write_n and_o not_o one_o book_n or_o chapter_n or_o leaf_n or_o line_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o because_o the_o order_n of_o our_o discourse_n have_v bring_v we_o up_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n i_o shall_v here_o give_v you_o a_o brief_a taste_n of_o their_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n and_o so_o conclude_v this_o argumentation_n in_o the_o contention_n about_o easter_n day_n between_o the_o eastern_a &_o western_a church_n 198._o polycrates_n with_o the_o asian_a bishop_n resist_v the_o pope_n judicial_a determination_n anno_fw-la 198._o and_o therefore_o doubtless_o they_o believe_v not_o his_o infallibility_n nor_o universal_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o first_o that_o subscribe_v be_v eustathius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n before_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n theodor._n li._n 1._o c._n 7._o so_o do_v hosius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n in_o spain_n as_o athanas_n apolog._n 2._o in_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n the_o pope_n legate_n have_v the_o last_o place_n conc._n afric_n 9_o can._n 100_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v 157._o subscribe_v before_o philip_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n menna_n their_o bishop_n be_v precedent_n evangri_n l._n 4._o c._n 38._o and_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o then_o so_o much_o as_o the_o presidency_n how_o much_o less_o a_o universal_a jurisdiction_n with_o infallibility_n when_o stephen_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n determine_v judicial_o against_o rebaptise_v heretic_n and_o excommunicate_v firmilianus_n for_o not_o assent_v and_o write_v to_o cyprian_a about_o it_o what_o do_v they_o do_v do_v they_o either_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o infallible_a or_o obey_v he_o as_o their_o universal_a ruler_n no_o but_o cyprian_a firmilian_a with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n do_v unanimous_o join_v against_o the_o pope_n decree_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v by_o what_o spectacle_n the_o papist_n can_v read_v these_o word_n of_o 229._o cyprian_n to_o find_v out_o their_o infallibility_n in_o they_o in_o his_o epist_n 74._o ad_fw-la pempeium_n he_o say_v thus_o i_o have_v send_v a_o copy_n of_o our_o brother_n stephen_n letter_n which_o when_o you_o read_v you_o will_v see_v his_o error_n more_o and_o more_o who_o endeavour_v to_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o heretic_n against_o the_o christian_n and_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o among_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v either_o proud_o or_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o contrary_a to_o himself_o and_o ignorant_o and_o unadvised_o he_o add_v etc._n etc._n here_o mention_v pope_n stephens_n plead_v of_o tradition_n he_o say_v whence_o be_v that_o tradition_n be_v it_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o gospel_n come_v it_o from_o the_o command_n and_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o that_o we_o must_v do_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v god_n testify_v and_o propound_v to_o joshua_n say_v let_v not_o this_o book_n of_o the_o law_n depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n if_o therefore_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n epistle_n or_o in_o the_o act_n then_o let_v this_o divine_a and_o holy_a tradition_n be_v observe_v what_o obstinacy_n be_v this_o and_o what_o presumption_n to_o prefer_v humane_a tradition_n before_o divine_a appointment_n and_o not_o to_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v angry_a and_o offend_v as_o oft_o as_o humane_a tradition_n do_v lose_v or_o pass_v by_o the_o command_n of_o god_n as_o isaiah_n say_v this_o people_n honour_v i_o with_o their_o lip_n but_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o commendement_n of_o man_n and_o as_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n reprove_v they_o you_o reject_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o establish_v your_o tradition_n so_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 6.3_o if_o any_o teach_v otherwise_o and_o rest_v not_o in_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o doctrine_n he_o be_v proud_a or_o lift_v up_o with_o stupidity_n know_v nothing_o from_o such_o we_o must_v depart_v the_o custom_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o with_o some_o ought_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o truth_n from_o prevail_v and_o overcome_v for_o custom_n without_o truth_n be_v but_o antiquity_n of_o error_n therefore_o leave_v error_n let_v we_o follow_v truth_n it_o be_v through_o a_o study_n of_o presumption_n and_o contumacy_n that_o a_o man_n will_v rather_o defend_v his_o own_o wicked_a and_o false_a opinion_n than_o consent_n to_o another_o that_n be_v right_a and_o true_a paul_n therefore_o say_v that_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v no_o quarrel_n but_o mild_a and_o teachable_a for_o a_o bishop_n must_v not_o only_o teach_v but_o be_v teach_v and_o there_o be_v a_o speedy_a way_n for_o religious_a and_o simple_a mind_n to_o lay_v down_o error_n and_o to_o find_v and_o disclose_v the_o truth_n for_o if_o we_o return_v to_o scripture_n the_o head_n and_o original_a of_o god_n tradition_n humane_a error_n cease_v and_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o cloudy_a darkness_n it_o open_v in_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n if_o the_o water_n pipe_n be_v stop_v do_v we_o not_o run_v to_o the_o fountain_n to_o see_v what_o be_v the_o matter_n so_o now_o must_v the_o priest_n of_o god_n that_o keep_v his_o commandment_n that_o if_o in_o any_o point_n truth_n have_v change_v or_o waver_v we_o may_v return_v to_o the_o original_n even_o the_o tradition_n by_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o our_o action_n may_v rise_v from_o thence_o from_o whence_o both_o order_n and_o beginning_n do_v arise_v so_o far_o cyprian_n if_o the_o papist_n can_v make_v their_o follower_n now_o believe_v that_o cyprian_a believe_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a keeper_n of_o tradition_n or_o that_o tradition_n be_v not_o to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o scripture_n than_o you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o purpose_n it_o be_v that_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o why_o they_o call_v it_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n even_o that_o it_o may_v be_v at_o their_o service_n and_o so_o flexible_a as_o to_o yield_v to_o what_o sense_n they_o will_v put_v upon_o it_o when_o they_o will_v needs_o exercise_v the_o same_o authority_n on_o the_o father_n themselves_o who_o in_o their_o familiar_a epistle_n speak_v as_o plain_a as_o they_o can_v firmilianus_n a_o famous_a bishop_n write_v a_o confutation_n of_o pope_n stephen_n epistle_n
presbyter_n ordinatur_fw-la quid_fw-la mihi_fw-la proffer_n unius_fw-la vrbis_fw-la consuttudinem_fw-la quid_fw-la paucitatem_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la ortum_fw-la est_fw-la supercilium_fw-la in_o leges_fw-la eccesiae_n vindicas_fw-la that_o be_v for_o what_o do_v a_o bishop_n except_o ordination_n which_o a_o presbyter_n may_v not_o do_v nor_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_a city_n to_o be_v esteem_v one_o and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n another_o both_o france_n and_o britain_n and_o africa_n and_o persia_n and_o the_o east_n and_o jndia_n and_o all_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n do_v worship_n one_o christ_n and_o observe_v one_o rule_n of_o truth_n if_o you_o seek_v for_o authority_n the_o world_n be_v great_a than_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n wherever_o there_o be_v a_o bishop_n whether_o at_o rome_n or_o at_o eugubium_n or_o at_o constantinople_n or_o at_o rhegium_n at_o alexandria_n or_o at_o tanis_n of_o the_o same_o merit_n he_o be_v also_o of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n the_o power_n of_o riches_n and_o the_o lowness_n of_o poverty_n make_v not_o a_o bishop_n high-eror_a low_a but_o they_o be_v all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o you_o say_v order_n how_o be_v it_o that_o at_o rome_n a_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o deacon_n what_o tell_v you_o i_o of_o the_o custom_n of_o one_o city_n why_o do_v you_o defend_v a_o few_o of_o which_o superciliousness_n be_v arisen_a against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n it_o may_v be_v the_o papist_n by_o their_o supereminent_a power_n of_o interpret_n all_o church_n writer_n can_v put_v such_o a_o sense_n on_o these_o word_n of_o hierom_n as_o shall_v consist_v with_o that_o which_o he_o purposely_o do_v oppose_v but_o i_o think_v a_o impartial_a man_n can_v hardly_o believe_v that_o when_o he_o write_v these_o word_n he_o be_v acquaint_v with_o rome_n claim_n of_o universal_a jurisdiction_n and_o infallibility_n nay_o when_o it_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o much_o of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o epistle_n to_o prove_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o at_o that_o time_n they_o differ_v in_o no_o power_n but_o that_o of_o ordain_v when_o yet_o he_o say_v the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n do_v long_o make_v their_o own_o bishop_n how_o then_o can_v hierome_n believe_v the_o pope_n universal_a jurisdiction_n can_v he_o think_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v that_o power_n over_o the_o church_n which_o he_o think_v not_o any_o bishop_n to_o have_v over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o any_o one_o church_n greg._n nazianzen_n say_v of_o council_n if_o i_o must_v write_v the_o truth_n 121._o i_o be_o of_o this_o mind_n that_o i_o will_v fly_v or_o avoid_v all_o council_n of_o bishop_n for_o i_o never_o see_v a_o glad_a or_o happy_a end_n of_o any_o council_n or_o which_o do_v not_o rather_o bring_v a_o addition_n or_o increase_n of_o evil_n than_o a_o removal_n of_o they_o to_o this_o of_o nazianzen_n bellarmine_n answer_v that_o gregory_n mean_v that_o in_o his_o time_n no_o council_n can_v be_v whole_o lawful_a for_o he_o live_v between_o the_o first_o and_o second_o general_a council_n where_o he_o have_v see_v many_o council_n which_o because_o of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o heretic_n have_v a_o bad_a end_n and_o he_o name_v five_o of_o they_o answ_n 1._o but_o by_o what_o authority_n do_v bellarmine_n confine_v gregory_n word_n to_o some_o council_n which_o he_o speak_v in_o general_a of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v see_v or_o may_v do_v resolve_v to_o avoid_v all_o hereafter_o 2._o here_o note_v that_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o council_n may_v err_v and_o then_o where_o be_v the_o french_a religion_n 3._o i_o will_v fain_o know_v where_o be_v the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o power_n of_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o nazianzen_n day_n if_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a general_n council_n nor_o can_v be_v than_o it_o be_v not_o in_o they_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v either_o in_o the_o people_n and_o how_o shall_v we_o gather_v the_o world_n together_o to_o consult_v with_o they_o or_o else_o as_o bellarmine_n will_v say_v in_o the_o pope_n alone_o or_o in_o the_o roman_a clergy_n with_o he_o council_n i_o hear_v not_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v very_o forward_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a clergy_n in_o particular_a be_v infallible_a though_o bellarmine_n have_v give_v we_o his_o bold_a conjecture_n of_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v therefore_o that_o at_o that_o time_n all_o the_o church_n infallible_a judicial_a power_n and_o so_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o pope_n alone_o and_o so_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o world_n must_v then_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o word_n of_o a_o single_a and_o silly_a man_n i_o know_v the_o italian_a faction_n will_v not_o abhor_v this_o at_o any_o time_n but_o then_o they_o shall_v for_o shame_n speak_v out_o and_o deal_v plain_o with_o the_o world_n and_o not_o talk_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o church_n when_o they_o mean_v but_o one_o man_n 4._o and_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o any_o friend_n of_o bellarmine_n how_o far_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v visible_a at_o that_o time_n when_o all_o council_n be_v bad_a and_o none_o can_v be_v lawful_a the_o visibility_n be_v not_o in_o a_o council_n to_o represent_v the_o whole_a and_o the_o ●aity_n be_v not_o much_o note_v when_o council_n go_v wrong_a ●o_o that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a only_o in_o one_o man_n or_o ●_o few_o particular_a person_n according_a to_o the_o papist_n common_a reckon_n who_o judge_n by_o the_o pastor_n visibility_n yea_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o be_v invisible_a ●hen_o and_o divers_a time_n when_o their_o bishop_n be_v a_o heretic_n if_o therefore_o they_o will_v say_v either_o that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a in_o one_o man_n or_o in_o the_o laity_n of_o many_o part_n oppress_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o magistracy_n and_o they_o have_v nothing_o more_o to_o say_v than_o we_o will_v ●ay_n as_o much_o of_o the_o visibility_n of_o our_o church_n before_o luther_n and_o more_o too_o 5._o it_o be_v confess_v here_o also_o that_o ●ot_n only_o a_o council_n but_o the_o great_a number_n by_o ●ery_a many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v heretic_n or_o err_v in_o faith_n 6._o and_o then_o the_o church_n may_v lie_v in_o the_o small_a oppress_a part_n and_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o most_o err_v now_o lucifer_n stapleton_n himself_o confess_v ●hat_n luther_n be_v not_o much_o out_o of_o the_o way_n when_o he_o say_v ●here_o be_v scarce_o five_o bishop_n ●o_o be_v find_v that_o turn_v not_o arrian_n and_o hierome●aith_o ●aith_z dialog_n advers._fw-la lucifer_n the_o whole_a world_n ●●aned_v and_o wonder_v that_o it_o be_v turn_v arrian_n ●_o and_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n at_o that_o time_n ●ll_z quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la when_o the_o judge_n be_v turn_v heretic_n ●ven_o liberius_n and_o the_o council_n and_o if_o the_o high_a eulogy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v prove_v its_o authority_n then_o see_v what_o nazian●ene_n say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o caesarea_n in_o his_o 22._o epistle_n ad_fw-la caesarienses_n patris_fw-la nomine_fw-la scripta_fw-la find_v among_o his_o own_o work_n edit_n paris_n tom._n 1._o 85._o pag._n 785._o and_o also_o in_o basils_n work_n translate_v by_o musculus_fw-la edit_fw-la basil_n 1565._o tom._n 2._o pag._n 17._o see_v every_o church_n as_o be_v christ_n body_n be_v to_o be_v watch_v over_o or_o look_v to_o with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n then_o special_o you_o which_o ancient_o be_v and_o now_o be_v and_o be_v esteem_v almost_o o●_n nigh_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n on_o which_o th●_n whole_a christian_a commonwealth_n do_v cast_v their_o eye_n even_o as_o the_o encompass_v circle_n do_v on_o the_o centre_n not_o only_o for_o the_o soundness_n of_o doctrine_n long_o divulge_v to_o all_o but_o also_o for_o that_o conspicuous_a grace_n of_o concord_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o what_o will_v the_o papist_n say_v but_o that_o this_o be_v fo●_n their_o supremacy_n if_o they_o find_v but_o this_o much_o in_o he_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o in_o thos●_n ancient_a time_n the_o church_n be_v acquaint_v with_o th●_n true_a way_n of_o government_n as_o well_o as_o rome_n be_v now_o and_o therefore_o i_o will_v know_v further_o 8._o whether_o th●_n true_a government_n may_v not_o stand_v with_o great_a desolation_n division_n of_o the_o church_n and_o multitude_n of_o error_n greg._n nazianzen_n say_v orat._n 20_o pag._n mih●_n 345._o 345._o that_o when_o basil_n se●_n upon_o the_o great_a work_n of_o heal_v the_o church_n the_o holy_a
it_o and_o at_o last_o it_o be_v come_v to_o this_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o remain_v establish_v and_o inviolable_a with_o we_o nor_o etc._n with_o any_o before_o we_o and_o as_o for_o the_o likeness_n '_o of_o god_n the_o son_n to_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o our_o miserable_a time_n that_o he_o be_v not_o like_a in_o whole_a or_o but_o in_o part_n we_o be_v excellent_a time_n judge_n or_o arbitrator_n sure_a the_o seeker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a mystery_n who_o do_v calumniate_v in_o our_o profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n we_o decree_v yearly_a and_o monthly_a belief_n of_o god_n we_o repent_v of_o our_o decree_n we_o defend_v they_o we_o anathematise_v those_o that_o be_v defend_v we_o damn_v other_o man_n matter_n in_o we_o or_o they_o damn_v we_o in_o they_o and_o bite_v one_o another_o we_o be_v consume_v one_o of_o aouther_n a_o belief_n be_v again_o seek_v for_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o belief_n a_o belief_n must_v be_v write_v as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o heart_n be_v already_o regenerate_v by_o faith_n we_o be_v now_o teach_v to_o believe_v as_o though_o the_o regeneration_n be_v without_o belief_n we_o lear●_n christ_n after_o baptism_n as_o if_o baptism_n can_v be_v anything_o baptism_n without_o the_o faith_n o●_n christ_n p._n 309._o amon●_n these_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n the_o heritage_n of_o our_o heavenly_a patrimony_n be_v no●_n almost_o profligate_v it_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n for_o we_o to_o retain_v that_o first_o and_o only_a evangelical_n belief_n confess_v in_o baptism_n and_o understand_v and_o not_o to_o chang●_n that_o good_a belief_n which_o only_o i_o have_v receive_v and_o hear_v not_o as_o if_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o our_o father_n nice_a be_v to_o be_v damn_v as_o irreligious_o and_o impious_o write_v but_o because_o through_o man_n rashness_n they_o be_v use_v to_o contradiction_n that_o for_o this_o the_o gospel_n may_v safe_o be_v deny_v under_o the_o name_n of_o novelty_n as_o if_o it_o be_v innovate_v that_o it_o may_v be_v mend_v that_o which_o be_v mend_v always_o effect_v this_o that_o while_o every_o amendment_n do_v displease_v every_o amendment_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o a_o follow_a amendment_n as_o if_o now_o whatever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v no_o amendment_n of_o a_o amendment_n but_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o condemnation_n of_o it_o in_o this_o much_o o_o emperor_n constantius_n i_o admire_v thou_o as_o of_o a_o bless_a and_o religious_a will_n desire_v a_o belief_n only_o according_a to_o what_o be_v write_v ☞_o and_o indeed_o just_o hasten_v to_o those_o very_a word_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v god_n that_o the_o breast_n capable_a of_o impartial_a solicitude_n may_v also_o be_v full_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o that_o refuse_v this_o be_v a_o antichrist_n and_o he_o that_o counterfeit_v it_o be_v anathema_n but_o this_o one_o thing_n i_o entreat_v of_o thou_o that_o the_o council_n be_v present_a which_o now_o quarrel_n about_o the_o belief_n thou_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v i_o a_o few_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o i_o may_v speak_v with_o thou_o of_o the_o word_n of_o my_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o banish_a man_n or_o priest_n i_o be_o o_o emperor_n do_v thou_o seek_v a_o belief_n hear_v it_o not_o out_o of_o newpaper_n but_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o god_n remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o question_n of_o philosophy_n but_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o desire_v not_o audience_n so_o much_o for_o myself_o as_o for_o thou_o and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o i_o have_v my_o belief_n with_o myself_o and_o need_v none_o from_o without_o that_o which_o i_o have_v receive_v i_o hold_v and_o i_o change_v not_o that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n but_o yet_o remember_v that_o there_o be_v no_o heretic_n but_o do_v false_o pretend_v that_o he_o speak_v that_o in_o which_o he_o blaspheme_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n here_o he_o name_v marcellus_n photinus_n sabellius_n montaneus_n manichaeus_n martion_n they_o all_o speak_v scripture_n without_o its_o meaning_n they_o pretend_v faith_n without_o faith_n for_o the_o scripture_n lie_v not_o in_o read_v but_o in_o understanding_n nor_o in_o prevarication_n but_o in_o charity_n hear_v i_o pray_v thou_o what_o be_v write_v of_o christ_n lest_o under_o they_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v be_v preach_v submit_v thy_o ear_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o from_o these_o book_n i_o shall_v speak_v lift_v up_o thy_o faith_n to_o god_n hear_v that_o which_o profit_v to_o belief_n to_o unity_n to_o eternity_n i_o will_v speak_v to_o thou_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o thy_o faith_n all_o thing_n profitable_a to_o the_o peace_n of_o east_n and_o west_n under_o the_o public_a knowledge_n under_o a_o disagree_a council_n under_o a_o famous_a contention_n i_o will_v defend_v nothing_o to_o scandal_n nor_o that_o be_v without_o or_o beside_o the_o gospel_n here_o he_o recite_v a_o short_a creed_n in_o scripture_n word_n especial_o about_o christ_n i_o confess_v i_o fear_v i_o be_o too_o tedious_a in_o these_o long_a citation_n but_o i_o do_v it_o that_o the_o papist_n may_v not_o say_v that_o we_o take_v particular_a word_n or_o shred_n of_o sentence_n without_o the_o full_a sense_n here_o i_o desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v note_v 1._o that_o council_n may_v err_v and_o differ_v 2._o that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o authorize_v judge_n of_o our_o belief_n that_o in_o hilaryes_fw-mi judgement_n their_o determination_n have_v occasion_v the_o ruin_n and_o dangerous_a division_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o only_o true_a of_o the_o arrian_n council_n but_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a itself_o though_o its_o belief_n be_v sound_a even_o by_o the_o novelty_n of_o term_n and_o example_n for_o further_a innovate_a 4._o that_o hilary_n never_o call_v the_o emperor_n to_o consult_v with_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o authorize_v infallible_a judge_n even_o when_o he_o profess_v to_o tell_v he_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n east_n and_o west_n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o be_v because_o heretic_n believe_v not_o rome_n authority_n or_o infallibility_n i_o answer_v it_o have_v then_o most_o near_o concern_v hilary_n to_o teach_v it_o they_o when_o he_o teach_v they_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o peace_n especial_o if_o that_o be_v the_o foundation_n into_o which_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v 5._o last_o note_n that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o ancient_a baptismal_a creed_n which_o hilary_n here_o call_v they_o to_o for_o peace_n and_o heal_n of_o all_o the_o world_n division_n ☞_o o_o sad_a case_n that_o this_o advice_n be_v never_o take_v to_o this_o day_n o_o happy_a church_n when_o ever_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o never_o till_o then_o and_o here_o because_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o weary_v the_o reader_n and_o make_v these_o testimony_n unproportionable_a to_o the_o brevity_n of_o the_o disputation_n i_o shall_v forbear_v add_v those_o that_o i_o think_v to_o have_v add_v yet_o assure_v any_o papist_n that_o read_v it_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o more_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n on_o our_o side_n for_o i_o have_v ready_a to_o transcribe_v in_o those_o few_o book_n which_o stand_v at_o my_o elbow_n sufficient_a testimony_n short_a or_o long_o in_o all_o these_o follow_a author_n in_o their_o own_o write_n viz._n clemens_n romanus_n ignatius_n justin_n martyr_n irenaeus_n the_o suppose_a dionysius_n areop_v tertullian_n origen_n clemens_n alexandr_n athenagoras_n fatianus_n arnobius_n athanasius_n lactantius_n macarius_n cyril_n alexand._n cyril_n hierosol_n synesius_n epiphanius_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n chrysostome_n gregorius_n thaumat_n neocaesar_n greg._n nyssen_n basilius_n seleuciae_fw-la ambrose_n theodoret_n damascene_fw-la isidore_n hispal_a gaudentius_n brixianus_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n salvianus_n massil_n caesarius_n arelaten_v alcuinus_fw-la vel_fw-la albinus_n beda_n vigilius_n joannes_n maxen●ius_n alcimus_n avitus_n prosper_n fulgentius_n oecumenius_n theophylact._n bernard_n with_o many_o other_o beside_o all_o before_o name_v of_o who_o some_o speak_v full_o to_o the_o point_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n call_v we_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n for_o the_o resolution_n or_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o not_o to_o the_o authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n i_o shall_v only_o stay_v so_o long_o as_o to_o add_v two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o elder_a though_o brief_a and_o two_o or_o three_o canon_n of_o some_o council_n because_o there_o will_v seem_v more_o weight_n in_o
of_o the_o church_n and_o decider_n of_o controversy_n 3._o observe_v also_o that_o vincentius_n do_v full_o and_o purposely_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o never_o once_o mention_v any_o tradition_n as_o necessary_a to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o scripture_n or_o as_o part_v of_o god_n word_n when_o scripture_n be_v but_o the_o other_o part_n not_o a_o word_n of_o such_o tradition_n but_o only_o of_o tradition_n subordinate_a to_o scripture_n finaliter_fw-la for_o the_o true_a expound_v of_o they_o hear_v himself_o cap._n 2._o hic_fw-la forsit_fw-la a_o requirat_fw-la aliquis_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la perfectus_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la canon_n sihique_fw-la ad_fw-la omnia_fw-la satis_fw-la superque_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la quid_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la ei_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la jungatur_fw-la authoritas_fw-la quia_fw-la videlicet_fw-la scripturam_fw-la sacram_fw-la pro_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sua_fw-la altitudine_fw-la non_fw-la uno_fw-la eodemque_fw-la sensu_fw-la universi_fw-la accipinut_n and_o in_o his_o recapitulation_n cap._n 41._o diximu●_n in_o superioribus_fw-la hanc_fw-la fuisset_fw-la semper_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la hodie_fw-la catholicorum_n consuetudinem_fw-la ut_fw-la fidem_fw-la veram_fw-la duobus_fw-la his_fw-la modis_fw-la approbent_fw-la primum_fw-la divini_fw-la canonis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la deinde_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la traditione_n non_fw-la quia_fw-la canon_n solus_fw-la non_fw-la sibi_fw-la ad_fw-la universa_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la verba_fw-la divina_fw-la pro_fw-la svo_fw-la plerique_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la interpretantes_fw-la varias_fw-la opiniones_fw-la errores_fw-la que_fw-la concipiant_fw-la so_o that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a ad_fw-la omne_fw-la ad_fw-la universa_fw-la only_o the_o church_n tradition_n that_o be_v interpretation_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o it_o 4_o note_v also_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o vincentius_n mention_v be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n any_o more_o than_o any_o other_o but_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v or_o hold_v ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la every_o where_o always_o and_o by_o all_o 5_o note_v also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o authoritative_a determination_n of_o any_o person_n or_o person_n whosoever_o but_o universal_a consent_n that_o he_o refer_v u●to_o 6._o and_o it_o be_v not_o in_o lesser_a probable_a or_o controvert_v point_n but_o in_o those_o great_a necessary_a point_n which_o the_o church_n have_v whole_o every_o where_o in_o all_o age_n agreee_v in_o 7._o note_v diligent_o that_o one_o of_o the_o case_n he_o put_v be_v this_o cap_z 4._o quid_fw-la si_fw-la novella_fw-la aliqua_fw-la contagio_fw-la non_fw-la jam_fw-la portiunculam_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la totam_fw-la pari●er_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la commaculare_fw-la conetur_fw-la i._o e._n but_o what_o if_o any_o novel_a contagion_n shall_v not_o only_o stain_v a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a church_n a_o presumptuous_a question_n in_o the_o papist_n sense_n but_o what_o say_v he_o to_o it_o do_v he_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a no_o but_o tunc_fw-la item_n providebit_fw-la ut_fw-la antiquitati_fw-la inhaeteat_fw-la quae_fw-la prorsus_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ab_fw-la ulla_fw-la novitatis_fw-la fraud_n seduci_fw-la i._n e_o then_o let_v he_o see_v that_o he_o stick_v to_o antiquity_n which_o can_v at_o all_o now_o be_v seduce_v by_o any_o fraud_n of_o novelty_n here_o 1._o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o present_a church_n may_v all_o err_v 2._o he_o make_v the_o remedy_n to_o be_v a_o appeal_n to_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o not_o as_o the_o papist_n to_o appeal_v in_o all_o case_n to_o the_o present_a church_n or_o pope_n costerus_n seek_v by_o a_o citation_n out_o of_o tertullian_n in_o his_o annot._n to_o detort_v both_o 8._o last_o note_v diligent_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o case_n that_o vincentius_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n but_o only_o as_o in_o the_o weighty_a use_n beforesaid_a so_o in_o case_n of_o the_o newness_n of_o error_n when_o they_o first_o arise_v before_o they_o falsify_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n themselves_o let_v they_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o straits_n of_o time_n and_o before_o by_o the_o large_a spread_n of_o the_o poison_n they_o endeavour_v to_o vitiate_v the_o volume_n of_o our_o ancestor_n but_o dilate_a and_o inveterate_a heresy_n be_v to_o be_v set_v upon_o this_o way_n because_o by_o the_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n they_o have_v have_v a_o long_a occasion_n of_o steal_v truth_n that_o be_v antiquity_n and_o other_o sign_n of_o truth_n and_o therefore_o as_o for_o all_o those_o ancient_a prophaness_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n we_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n convince_v they_o but_o by_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o scripture_n if_o there_o be_v need_n or_o avoid_v they_o as_o certain_o already_o of_o old_a convict_a and_o condemn_v by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o catholic_a priest_n they_o be_v his_o own_o word_n translate_v pag._n 677._o edit_fw-la perionii_fw-la &_o pag._n 87_o 88_o edit_fw-la colon._n 1613._o so_o that_o you_o see_v vincentius_n suppose_v error_n may_v infect_v all_o the_o church_n and_o may_v grow_v old_a and_o so_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o in_o such_o case_n only_a scripture_n must_v be_v plead_v against_o it_o unless_o also_o we_o can_v produce_v some_o ancient_a council_n that_o have_v condemn_v it_o this_o be_v the_o very_a case_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n their_o heresy_n be_v old_a and_o far_o spread_v though_o not_o universal_a nor_o of_o utmost_a antiquity_n therefore_o between_o we_o and_o they_o the_o scripture_n only_o must_v be_v plead_v where_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o judge_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o plainness_n we_o need_v not_o go_v to_o the_o ancient_a church_n where_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o expositor_n we_o be_v content_a to_o deal_v with_o they_o on_o vincentius_n ground_n and_o to_o admit_v of_o that_o which_o ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la have_v be_v hold_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o will_v do_v the_o like_a and_o indeed_o this_o be_v our_o very_a religion_n will_v the_o papist_n but_o dispute_n their_o cause_n with_o we_o on_o these_o term_n we_o shall_v ready_o join_v issue_n with_o they_o and_o doubt_v not_o of_o a_o good_a success_n of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o our_o conradus_n bergius_n prax._n cathol_n divin_fw-fr canonis_fw-la the_o dispute_n which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o manage_v be_v only_o against_o popery_n in_o the_o gross_a and_o two_o or_o three_o branch_n of_o it_o only_o in_o particular_a i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v annex_v a_o brief_a enumeration_n of_o the_o particular_a error_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o vulgar_a may_v observe_v and_o avoid_v they_o and_o therein_o i_o think_v to_o have_v endeavour_v the_o true_a state_v of_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o both_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o error_n on_o the_o other_o extreme_a and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v take_v out_o of_o the_o papist_n hand_n the_o great_a of_o all_o their_o advantage_n against_o we_o which_o be_v the_o false-opposed_n opinion_n and_o unsound_a argument_n of_o such_o as_o thus_o err_v on_o the_o other_o side_n but_o perceive_v how_o it_o will_v lengthen_v this_o work_n beyond_o the_o intend_a limit_n and_o how_o certain_o all_o those_o that_o so_o run_v into_o extreme_n will_v fall_v a_o quarrel_v with_o i_o for_o not_o state_v the_o controversy_n according_a to_o their_o fancy_n i_o have_v think_v best_a for_o answer_v all_o my_o end_n at_o cheap_a rate_n to_o give_v you_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o popish_a error_n in_o the_o word_n of_o doctor_n feild_n and_o to_o that_o end_n to_o transcribe_v his_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n that_o so_o the_o simple_a reader_n may_v have_v some_o help_n to_o inform_v he_o without_o a_o commix_v mean_n to_o pervert_v he_o and_o for_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n solid_o defend_v and_o can_v have_v time_n to_o read_v many_o book_n i_o know_v not_o of_o any_o one_o that_o they_o may_v more_o profitable_o and_o safe_o read_v to_o that_o end_n then_o the_o say_a book_n of_o doctor_n field_n on_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o the_o appendix_n to_o the_o three_o part_n which_o be_v but_o the_o defence_n of_o this_o very_a chapter_n prove_v it_o in_o particular_n that_o the_o western_a church_n be_v protestant_n and_o not_o popish_a even_o in_o the_o worst_a time_n before_o luther_n reformation_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v but_o a_o seduce_a tyrannical_a party_n in_o the_o church_n endeavour_v to_o obtrude_v their_o error_n against_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o good_a man_n in_o which_o he_o have_v quite_o break_v down_o those_o pretence_n of_o universality_n and_o all_o the_o church_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o fond_o boast_v in_o dr._n field_n of_o the_o
quod_fw-la coram_fw-la omnibus_fw-la just_a vivre_fw-fr &_o bene_fw-la omne_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la credant_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la articules_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la continentur_fw-la solummodo_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la blasphemant_fw-la et_fw-la clerum_fw-la that_o be_v among_o all_o the_o sect_n that_o yet_o be_v and_o have_v be_v there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o the_o lyonist_n and_o that_o for_o three_o cause_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v the_o more_o 〈◊〉_d or_o of_o long_a continuance_n for_o some_o 〈◊〉_d it_o have_v endure_v from_o the_o time_n of_o silvester_n other_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v more_o general_a for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o land_n in_o which_o this_o ●ect_n ●s_v not_o 3._o because_o when_o all_o other_o sect_n do_v by_o the_o immanity_n of_o their_o blasphemy_n bring_v horror_n into_o the_o hearer_n this_o of_o the_o lyonist_n have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o godliness_n in_o that_o they_o live_v righteous_o before_o all_o man_n and_o they_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o concern_v god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o clergy_n to_o this_o add_v what_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o canus_n and_o other_o before_o last_o give_v we_o some_o tolerable_a answer_n to_o all_o that_o voluminous_a evidence_n of_o your_o opposition_n by_o prince_n prelate_n divine_n and_o lawyer_n which_o mich._n goldastus_n have_v collect_v and_o publish_v on_o his_o volume_n the_o monarch_n &_o constitut_v imperial_a appendix_n a_o translation_n of_o bishop_n downame_n catalogue_n of_o popish_a error_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la cap._n 7._o to_o satisfy_v the_o earnest_a desire_n of_o some_o of_o the_o unlearned_a who_o will_v fain_o know_v wherein_o the_o papist_n differ_v from_o we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o furnish_v against_o they_o and_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v those_o that_o under_o other_o title_n carry_v about_o their_o doctrine_n because_o i_o find_v many_o ignorant_a person_n both_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n plain_a and_o yet_o very_o desirous_a to_o know_v they_o i_o have_v adventure_v to_o translate_v a_o large_a catalogue_n of_o they_o gather_v by_o bishop_n george_n downame_n in_o his_o book_n write_v to_o prove_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 7._o pag._n 189._o etc._n etc._n though_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o in_o such_o brief_a expression_n the_o true_a point_n of_o the_o difference_n shall_v in_o all_o lie_n plain_a before_o they_o that_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o controversy_n yet_o because_o i_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o give_v you_o any_o such_o catalogue_n of_o my_o own_o gather_n and_o know_v not_o where_o to_o find_v one_o so_o large_a as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o error_n and_o brief_a as_o to_o the_o expression_n i_o give_v you_o this_o as_o i_o find_v it_o bishop_n g.d._n chap._n 7._o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v either_o about_o the_o principle_n of_o divinity_n or_o the_o part_n of_o it_o the_o principle_n of_o theology_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n here_o the_o papist_n have_v many_o error_n 1._o they_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v of_o divine_a inspiration_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o foundation_n truth_n of_o faith_n 2._o they_o take_v certain_a apocryphal_a book_n into_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o neither_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n to_o which_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v nor_o yet_o the_o pure_a christian_a church_n do_v receive_v fabric_n 3._o they_o make_v two_o part_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o their_o own_o tradition_n 4._o they_o contend_v that_o the_o custom_n and_o unwritten_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o certain_a apostolical_a tradition_n 5._o these_o tradition_n or_o as_o they_o call_v they_o unwritten_a verity_n they_o make_v equal_a with_o the_o holy_a scriture_n and_o receive_v and_o reverence_v they_o with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n and_o reverence_n 6._o they_o number_v the_o pope_n decretal_a epistle_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n clementines_n stature_n 7._o they_o say_v its_o heresy_n for_o any_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n to_o appoint_v article_n of_o faith_n we_o 8._o they_o prefer_v the_o faith_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o internal_a scripture_n write_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o heart_n of_o the_o church_n b●fore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n judgement_n 9_o that_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n himself_o speak_v be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o strife_n 10._o life_n they_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o light_n to_o our_o foot_n and_o giveth_z understanding_n to_o child_n of_o too_o much_o obscurity_n 11._o error_n they_o condemn_v it_o also_o of_o imperfection_n and_o insufficiency_n 12._o they_o say_v that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n we_o can_v argue_v negative_o from_o scripture_n as_o thus_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a or_o lawful_a 13._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o refute_v of_o all_o heresy_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o heresy_n but_o what_o be_v against_o scripture_n 14._o that_o heresy_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v define_v by_o the_o scripture_n authority_n as_o by_o the_o church_n determination_n 15._o foundation_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a be_v great_a ●en_n of_o the_o scripture_n ●nd_v the_o pope_n authority_n great_a than_o the_o church_n 16._o member_n that_o the_o church_n be_v ancient_a than_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v now_o write_v because_o it_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o writing_n of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v first_o deliver_v by_o voice_n that_o be_v now_o then_o in_o writing_n etc._n 17._o that_o the_o scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a and_o not_o the_o church_n on_o the_o scripture_n arrogancy_n 18._o also_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 19_o they_o make_v seven_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v all_o ground_a in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v and_o pope_n of_o rome_n they_o 20._o they_o take_v the_o vulg●_fw-la translation_n only_o for_o authentical_a prefer_n it_o before_o the_o original_n though_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_o corrupt_v that_o the_o copy_n late_o publish_v by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o clement_n the_o eight_o do_v in_o many_o place_n differ_v 21._o principle_n that_o either_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n or_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o it_o must_v neither_o be_v public_o read_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n nor_o permit_v to_o be_v private_o read_v by_o the_o common_a people_n §_o 2._o of_o the_o belief_n the_o part_n of_o theology_n be_v 1._o of_o faith_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v 2._o of_o charity_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v 1._o of_o god_n &_o his_o work_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v special_o 1._o of_o creation_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o of_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n 1._o god_n about_o the_o creation_n the_o papist_n err_v in_o say_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v then_o natural_a to_o man_n though_o john_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n 1_o jo._n 2.16_o and_o themselves_o sometime_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v evil_a and_o contrary_a to_o nature_n controversy_n 2._o in_o the_o deny_v that_o original_a righteousness_n be_v natural_a to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n create_v after_o god_n image_n in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n sin_n 3._o in_o affirm_v that_o mortality_n be_v natural_a to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o from_o god_n the_o author_n of_o nature_n apostolical_a 4._o in_o place_v paradise_n where_o the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n do_v not_o reach_v it_o which_o yet_o cover_v all_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v fifteen_o cubit_n high_o than_o the_o high_a mountain_n 5._o forsooth_o they_o will_v have_v that_o paradise_n or_o eden_n yet_o untouched_a that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o pleasant_a habitatian_n to_o henoch_v and_o elias_n
any_o internal_a virtue_n but_o a_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v several_o be_v the_o clergy_n the_o laity_n 2._o that_o clergy_n man_n be_v not_o hold_v under_o civil_a law_n by_o any_o coactive_a but_o only_a directive_n bond_n 3._o that_o clergy_n man_n break_v the_o civil_a law_n can_v yet_o be_v punish_v by_o any_o civil_a judge_n nor_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o secular_a magistrate_n 4._o that_o the_o good_n of_o the_o clergy_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a be_v free_a from_o the_o tribute_n and_o tax_n of_o secular_a prince_n 5._o that_o man_n be_v to_o be_v prepare_v for_o receive_v order_n by_o the_o first_o shave_v 6._o by_o how_o much_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o order_n any_o one_o be_v in_o by_o so_o much_o the_o large_a shave_v be_v he_o to_o be_v crown_v with_o 7._o that_o single_a life_n be_v always_o join_v to_o holy_a order_n by_o divine_a right_n the_o popish_a clergy_n a●●_n either_o secular_o and_o those_o either_o regulars_n of_o the_o low_a order_n of_o the_o high_a order_n which_o they_o call_v priest_n and_o be_v both_o the_o less_o as_o presbyter_n the_o great_a as_o bishop_n 8._o that_o the_o clergy_n man_n of_o the_o high_a order_n be_v priest_n properly_z so_o call_v which_o they_o say_v be_v institute_v to_o offer_v a_o external_a and_o real_a sacrifice_n 9_o the_o choice_n of_o bishop_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o divine_a right_n trent_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n receive_v jurisdiction_n from_o the_o pope_n 11._o the_o roman_a church_n have_v cardinal_n for_o sides-man_n to_o the_o pope_n upon_o who_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v turn_v as_o upon_o hinge_n 12._o these_o be_v to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 13._o that_o those_o whether_o they_o be_v bishop_n or_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o bishop_n archbishop_n primate_fw-la patriarch_n but_o to_o be_v equal_v even_o with_o king_n §_o 20._o of_o council_n and_o monastical_a vow_n 1._o they_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v evangelical_n council_n distinct_a from_o command_n which_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o perform_v but_o they_o who_o profess_v perfection_n and_o will_v deserve_v more_o and_o great_a thing_n than_o eternal_a life_n 2._o that_o the_o study_n of_o perfection_n be_v not_o of_o command_n but_o council_n 3._o such_o council_n be_v those_o of_o not_o seek_v revenge_n of_o love_v our_o adversary_n of_o not_o swear_v etc._n etc._n 4._o not_o to_o obey_v a_o council_n be_v no_o fin_n 5._o yet_o that_o some_o perfection_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o that_o consist_v in_o the_o full_a observation_n of_o the_o command_n 6._o that_o some_o other_o perfection_n be_v great_a and_o be_v necessary_a not_o simple_o for_o salvation_n but_o for_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n of_o glory_n and_o that_o consist_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o council_n 7._o by_o obedience_n to_o council_n man_n do_v supererogate_v 8._o that_o vow_a virginity_n and_o single_a life_n be_v most_o acceptable_a worship_n to_o god_n 9_o yea_o and_o the_o great_a satisfaction_n for_o sin_n and_o merit_n of_o eternal_a life_n 10._o a_o monastic_a life_n be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n 11._o all_o that_o be_v do_v by_o vow_n be_v a_o worship_n of_o god_n 12._o monastical_a vow_n do_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n and_o deserve_v eternal_a life_n 13._o our_o entrance_n into_o religion_n be_v a_o second_o baptism_n or_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o new_a baptism_n by_o which_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v for_o all_o former_a sin_n 14._o that_o perfection_n be_v to_o be_v place_v in_o true_a monastic_a vow_n as_o the_o vow_n of_o voluntary_a poverty_n the_o vow_n of_o perpetual_a chastity_n the_o vow_n of_o monastical_a obedience_n 15._o that_o voluntary_a poverty_n be_v right_o vow_v to_o god_n 16._o that_o its_o lawful_a lawful_a yea_o a_o meritorious_a work_n a_o work_n of_o perfection_n and_o supererogation_n in_o monk_n to_o live_v on_o beg_v 17._o it_o be_v lawful_a yea_o meritorious_a for_o the_o young_a man_n to_o vow_v single_a life_n for_o ever_o 18._o the_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n be_v to_o he_o keep_v by_o they_o who_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o continency_n 19_o there_o be_v none_o but_o may_v always_o contain_v if_o he_o will_n 20._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o child_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o vow_n against_o their_o parent_n consent_n 21._o they_o allow_v of_o great_a variety_n of_o vow_n which_o have_v various_a rule_n of_o life_n invent_v by_o man_n beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o as_o if_o there_o be_v great_a perfection_n in_o those_o rule_n then_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o more_o compendious_a way_n to_o perfection_n and_o salvation_n they_o teach_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o eternal_a life_n and_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n of_o glory_n be_v obtain_v 22._o they_o give_v the_o obedience_n which_o be_v due_a only_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o man_n that_o live_v after_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o franciscan_a domincan_n order_n etc._n etc._n 23._o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o first_o christian_n monk_n 24_o to_o they_o who_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o cowl_n of_o the_o monk_n especial_o of_o the_o franciscan_n they_o promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o some_o part_n coactive_a 25._o that_o prince_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o their_o subject_n on_o earth_n in_o all_o cause_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a 26._o they_o make_v prince_n subject_a to_o the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n §._o 21._o of_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v in_o the_o decalogue_n 1._o that_o regenerate_v and_o baptize_v person_n may_v perfect_o fulfil_v the_o law_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o fulfil_v it_o in_o this_o life_n 2._o easy_a the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n in_o this_o life_n be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a 3._o that_o every_o degree_n of_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n and_o expel_v all_o sin_n 4._o contrary_n that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o this_o life_n to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n 5._o and_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o all_o our_o strength_n neither_o be_v we_o bind_v not_o to_o have_v evil_a concupiscence_n 6._o that_o venial_a sin_n as_o they_o call_v they_o do_v not_o hinder_v that_o perfect_a obedience_n which_o be_v require_v in_o this_o life_n 7._o that_o the_o regenerate_a can_v do_v more_o than_o the_o law_n require_v 8._o they_o teach_v their_o disciple_n to_o worship_n god_n under_o a_o humane_a shape_n or_o figure_n 9_o that_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o call_v upon_o 10._o also_o saint_n that_o be_v dead_a be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o call_v upon_o 11._o that_o a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n such_o as_o they_o teach_v christ_n humanity_n wa●_n to_o be_v worship_v with_o but_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n ordinary_a worship_n 12._o that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v for_o so_o they_o touch_v they_o i_o worship_v and_o bless_v thy_o foot_n with_o which_o thou_o do_v tread_v down_o the_o old_a serpent_n head_n i_o worship_v and_o bless_v thy_o comely_a eye_n etc._n etc._n 23._o that_o according_a to_o the_o five_o letter_n of_o her_o name_n maria_n she_o be_v the_o mediatrix_fw-la of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o auxiliatrix_fw-la or_o helper_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o repairer_n of_o the_o weak_a the_o illuminater_n of_o the_o blind_a the_o advocate_n for_o all_o sin_n 14._o they_o name_v she_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n our_o lady_n and_o goddess_n the_o lady_n of_o angel_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n orat._n steph._n patracen_n in_o council_n late_a sess_z 10.666.6_o f._n 15._o for_o her_o honour_n and_o worship_n they_o have_v compose_v duty_n litany_n rosary_n and_o a_o psaltery_a all_o full_a of_o idolatry_n 16._o in_o the_o psaltery_a of_o mary_n whatsoever_o almost_o david_n have_v speak_v of_o god_n and_o christ_n they_o blasphemous_o give_v to_o she_o as_o for_o example_n o_o lady_n in_o thou_o have_v i_o put_v my_o trust_n deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o my_o enemy_n in_o psal_n 7._o and_o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o o_o lady_n with_o my_o whole_a heart_n psal_n 9_o i_o put_v my_o trust_n in_o thou_o o_o lady_n ps_n 10._o save_v i_o o_o lady_n psal_n 11._o keep_v i_o o_o lady_n because_o i_o have_v hope_v in_o thou_o psal_n 15._o the_o heaven_n declare_v thy_o glory_n o_o virgin_n mary_n psal_n 19_o to_o thou_o o_o lady_n have_v i_o lift_v up_o my_o soul_n psal_n 25._o have_v mercy_n on_o i_o o_o lady_n who_o
superstition_n and_o will-worship_n yea_o mere_a hypocrisy_n or_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n rest_v in_o external_a work_n and_o observation_n 31._o they_o worship_n god_n after_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n 32._o they_o defend_v the_o ceremony_n invent_v by_o themselves_o or_o take_v from_o jew_n or_o heathen_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o worship_n please_v to_o god_n 33._o and_o to_o be_v observe_v as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 34_o that_o their_o observation_n deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n 35_o that_o no_o ceremony_n appoint_v by_o the_o church_n can_v be_v omit_v without_o mortal_a sin_n nor_o without_o scandal_n error_n 36._o that_o thing_n consecrate_v by_o themselves_o as_o holy_a water_n dei_n &c._n &c._n have_v spiritual_a effect_n to_o drive_v away_o devil_n to_o blot_v out_o sin_n etc._n etc._n 37._o they_o conjure_v salt_n yea_o and_o herb_n and_o consecrate_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v healthful_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o body_n of_o those_o that_o take_v it_o 38._o they_o baptise_v and_o consecrate_v the_o bell_n make_v they_o godfather_n to_o fright_v away_o devil_n and_o drive_v away_o tempest_n 39_o that_o their_o ring_n do_v profit_v the_o dead_a 40._o the_o chrism_n be_v consecrate_v the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n salute_v it_o in_o these_o word_n god_n save_o st._n chrisma_n ave_fw-la s._n chrisma_n 41._o they_o give_v it_o a_o power_n to_o confer_v upon_o the_o anoint_a health_n to_o the_o body_n and_o holiness_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o 42._o that_o every_o church_n solemn_o consecrate_v be_v endue_v with_o a_o divine_a virtue_n 43._o the_o many_o abuse_n of_o fast_v and_o prayer_n i_o touch_v before_o 44._o they_o teach_v man_n to_o swear_v by_o the_o creature_n 45._o they_o deny_v oath_n to_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o perfect_a 46._o vow_n make_v to_o the_o saint_n they_o defend_v 47._o that_o the_o pope_n can_v absolve_v from_o the_o bond_n of_o vow_n and_o oath_n 48._o they_o consecrate_v feast_v day_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n 49._o and_o some_o they_o consecrate_v to_o patronize_v their_o own_o error_n as_o the_o feast_n of_o conception_n the_o feast_n of_o assumption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o feast_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o of_o peter_n chair_n and_o of_o all_o soul_n etc._n etc._n 50._o that_o feast_n day_n be_v in_o truth_n more_o holy_a than_o other_o 51._o they_o exempt_v the_o clergy_n from_o the_o secular_a yoke_n i.e._n they_o exempt_v ecclesiastic_n both_o person_n and_o good_n from_o the_o obedience_n of_o temporal_a lord_n and_o from_o their_o jurisdiction_n in_o personal_n and_o real_n in_o civil_a thing_n and_o criminal_a and_o therefore_o that_o the_o civil_a judge_n can_v punish_v clergyman_n 52._o that_o the_o clergy_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o prince_n 53._o that_o the_o rebellion_n of_o a_o clergyman_n against_o the_o king_n be_v not_o treason_n 54._o that_o the_o pope_n can_v forbid_v subject_n to_o keep_v the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n to_o christian_a king_n if_o they_o be_v such_o as_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o roman_a sea_n 55._o that_o the_o pope_n can_v absolve_v subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n 56._o that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v prince_n 57_o that_o the_o subject_n of_o such_o prince_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v such_o a_o sentence_n if_o it_o be_v publish_v 58._o that_o if_o grave_n and_o learned_a man_n such_o as_o the_o jesuit_n especial_o be_v shall_v judge_v any_o prince_n to_o be_v a_o tyrant_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o their_o subject_n to_o overthrow_v they_o and_o if_o they_o want_v power_n to_o poison_v they_o 59_o that_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o most_o christian_a king_n who_o they_o call_v lutheran_n and_o sacramentarian_o be_v free_a from_o all_o bond_n and_o that_o they_o may_v lawful_o destroy_v their_o king_n 60._o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o tolerate_v a_o king_n that_o be_v a_o infidel_n or_o a_o heretic_n indeavor_v to_o draw_v man_n to_o his_o sect_n but_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o depose_v he_o 61._o that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v not_o depose_v such_o because_o they_o want_v power_n 62._o that_o the_o pope_n may_v give_v the_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n and_o lordship_n of_o all_o those_o who_o he_o judge_n heretic_n unto_o his_o roman_a catholic_n or_o may_v adjudge_v they_o to_o those_o that_o can_v lay_v hold_n of_o they_o 63._o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o meritorious_a to_o kill_v prince_n that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n 64._o they_o suffer_v stew_n and_o stout_o defend_v their_o toleration_n 65._o they_o forbid_v the_o clergy_n to_o marry_v 66._o that_o priest_n do_v better_a say_v they_o that_o keep_v a_o concubine_n than_o he_o that_o marry_v a_o wife_n 67._o that_o marriage_n after_o the_o vow_n of_o chastity_n be_v worse_a than_o adultery_n 68_o that_o single_a life_n even_o as_o it_o be_v vow_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o worship_n most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o satisfactory_a for_o sin_n and_o meritorious_a of_o eternal_a life_n 69._o that_o the_o pope_n with_o a_o whorish_a intention_n make_v gain_v as_o leno_fw-la do_v by_o the_o prostitution_n of_o whore_n 70._o that_o all_o fault_n be_v sell_v at_o a_o certain_a price_n in_o the_o pope_n tax_n 71._o a_o officious_a lie_n they_o allow_v of_o 72._o they_o approve_v and_o teach_v the_o mystery_n of_o equivocation_n time_n 73._o the_o act_n of_o counterfeit_v and_o dissemble_v with_o great_a man_n they_o commend_v as_o good_a and_o profitable_a 74._o they_o say_v faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n 75._o that_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o will_n go_v before_o assent_n be_v not_o sin_n 76._o neither_o be_v concupiscence_n a_o sin_n in_o the_o baptise_a 77._o that_o in_o concupiscence_n there_o be_v only_o the_o evil_n of_o punishment_n not_o of_o sin_n 78._o by_o that_o command_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v it_o be_v not_o forbid_v that_o we_o have_v no_o evil_a desire_n i_o have_v recite_v a_o huge_a catalogue_n of_o error_n to_o which_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o many_o more_o may_v be_v heap_v up_o as_o those_o which_o we_o be_v refute_v in_o this_o book_n about_o antichrist_n by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o opposition_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o christ_n truth_n be_v not_o a_o particular_a opposition_n as_o in_o some_o heretic_n but_o universal_a such_o as_o we_o may_v look_v for_o from_o antichrist_n thus_o far_o bishop_n g._n downame_n finis_fw-la finis_fw-la the_o abominable_a wickedness_n of_o your_o party_n even_o the_o roman_a cardinal_n themselves_o be_v proclaim_v by_o many_o that_o have_v be_v your_o priest_n and_o turn_v from_o you_o as_o copley_n sheldon_n boxhorne_n and_o many_o more_o say_v sheldon_n in_o his_o survey_n of_o rome_n miracle_n p._n 18._o have_v speak_v of_o the_o cardinal_n sodomy_n believe_v it_o reader_n the_o abomination_n which_o be_v commit_v by_o these_o purpured_a father_n and_o the_o supreme_a father_n of_o that_o synagogue_n be_v so_o detestable_a that_o they_o pass_v all_o narration_n either_o of_o modest_a or_o immodest_a pen._n and_o it_o be_v long_a since_o petrarch_n dante_n be_v aventine_n parisian_n clemangis_fw-la sabellicus_n grosthead_n ferus_fw-la and_o more_o of_o your_o own_o writer_n have_v say_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v we_o of_o your_o sanctity_n many_o a_o one_o that_o have_v be_v ●iced_v to_o popery_n in_o england_n have_v be_v cure_v by_o a_o journey_n to_o rome_n see_v the_o abomination_n of_o that_o place_n veniale_a culpa_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la dispositio_fw-la ad_fw-la culpam_fw-la reinerius_n cont._n walden_v ubi_fw-la infra_fw-la armeniorum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o ethiopum_fw-la &_o jndorum_fw-la &_o caeterae_fw-la quas_fw-la apostoli_fw-la converterunt_fw-la non_fw-la subsunt_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la reinerius_fw-la cont_n walden_v catal._n in_o biblothe●_n par._n t._n 4._o p._n 773._o 773._o much_o contrary_a to_o damascene_fw-la who_o say_v that_o the_o rebaptise_v do_v crucify_v christ_n again_o orthod_n fid_fw-we li._n 4._o c._n 5._o p._n mihi_fw-la 296._o though_o i_o suppose_v he_o be_v as_o far_o on_o the_o other_o side_n side_n religion_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n seem_v to_o be_v as_o martinius_n propriè_fw-la actio_fw-la ejus_fw-la qui_fw-la res_fw-la divinas_fw-la studiose_fw-la relegit_fw-la pictatis_fw-la ergo_fw-la though_o the_o word_n be_v thence_o various_o use_v 2_o lactantius_n say_v instit_n li._n 4._o c._n 28._o hac_fw-la conditione_n gignimur_fw-la ut_fw-la generanti_fw-la nos_fw-la deo_fw-la justa_fw-la &_o debita_fw-la obsequia_fw-la prebcamus_fw-la hunc_fw-la s●lum_fw-la noverimus_fw-la hunc_fw-la sequamur_fw-la hoc_fw-la vinculo_fw-la pietatis_fw-la obstricti_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o religati_fw-la sumus_fw-la un●e_fw-la ipsa_fw-la religio_fw-la n●men_fw-la accepit_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la cicero_n interpretatus_fw-la est_fw-la a_o relegendo_fw-la melius_fw-la id_fw-la nomen_fw-la lucretius_n
that_o evangelical_n command_n so_o let_v your_o light_a shine_n etc._n etc._n §_o 7._o of_o confirmation_n 1._o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n for_o as_o it_o be_v do_v by_o great_a priest_n viz._n bishop_n which_o can_v be_v do_v by_o less_o so_o also_o it_o be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o hold_v with_o great_a veneration_n and_o reverence_n 2._o that_o confirmation_n do_v excel_v baptism_n in_o regard_n of_o its_o effect_n grace_n to_o well_o do_v 3._o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n do_v confer_v grace_n make_v we_o acceptable_a ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la and_o indeed_o more_o than_o baptism_n do_v 4._o in_o which_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v conser_v viz._n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la 5._o the_o matter_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v chrism_n o●●unction_n which_o they_o call_v the_o chrism_n of_o salvation_n 6._o that_o by_o this_o holy_a chrism_n make_v of_o oil_n and_o balsam_n and_o smeer_v on_o the_o forehead_n in_o form_n of_o a_o cross_n the_o sevenfold_a spirit_n of_o grace_n be_v give_v 7._o for_o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v give_v to_o we_o by_o oil_n as_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o form_n of_o fire_n 8._o that_o he_o will_v never_o be_v a_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o by_o episcopal_a confirmation_n chrismate_v 9_o instead_o of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n the_o bishop_n give_v he_o that_o be_v confirm_v a_o box_n on_o the_o ear_n to_o confirm_v he_o forsooth_o and_o to_o drive_v away_o the_o devil_n §_o 8._o of_o the_o eucharist_n 1._o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o teach_v and_o urge_v the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o that_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v to_o nourish_v body_n and_o not_o soul_n 2._o and_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o transubstantiation_n or_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o very_a blood_n 3._o that_o this_o transubstantiation_n be_v make_v by_o recite_v the_o sacramental_a word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o therefore_o they_o call_v these_o operative_a word_n 4._o that_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v mutter_v with_o a_o low_a murmur_a as_o if_o christ_n have_v speak_v they_o magical_o to_o inchant_v the_o bread_n and_o not_o to_o instruct_v his_o disciple_n 5._o thus_o they_o expound_v they_o this_o i._o e._n under_o these_o figure_n be_v my_o body_n and_o yet_o they_o urge_v the_o literal_a sense_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 6._o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o wine_n be_v make_v of_o water_n 7._o and_o yet_o that_o the_o priest_n when_o they_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o bread_n do_v not_o produce_v it_o as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o but_o do_v change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o very_a pray_fw-mi exist_v body_n 8._o that_o after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o mere_a accident_n and_o indeed_o all_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v 9_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o first_o matter_n do_v remain_v after_o the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n 10._o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v consume_v and_o cease_v to_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v not_o annihilate_v 11._o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n cease_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n succeed_v and_o be_v contain_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n 12._o that_o those_o accident_n be_v not_o in_o any_o subject_n nor_o do_v they_o subsist_v of_o themselves_o but_o be_v uphold_v by_o god_n after_o a_o supernatural_a manner_n 13._o that_o they_o be_v in_o somewhat_o else_o but_o do_v not_o inhere_o in_o it_o 14._o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v remain_v in_o the_o host_n as_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n remain_v uncorrupted_a 15._o that_o as_o long_o as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o host_n it_o be_v accompany_v with_o angel_n 16._o that_o in_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o species_n there_o be_v matter_n substitute_v by_o god_n in_o that_o very_a instant_n in_o which_o those_o species_n cease_v to_o be_v and_o in_o which_o something_o else_o be_v generate_v 17._o that_o the_o subject_n of_o these_o accident_n be_v quantity_n which_o also_o itself_o be_v a_o accident_n and_o which_o they_o feign_v to_o subsist_v without_o a_o quantum_fw-la that_o have_v dimension_n 18._o that_o the_o element_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n do_v not_o nourish_v if_o take_v in_o a_o great_a quantity_n without_o a_o divine_a miracle_n and_o therefore_o neither_o do_v they_o nourish_v the_o mouse_n that_o take_v a_o small_a quantity_n without_o a_o miracle_n 19_o but_o as_o they_o take_v away_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o so_o with_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o they_o rob_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o a_o true_a body_n by_o this_o fiction_n of_o transubstantiation_n 20._o and_o as_o they_o feign_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n without_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o so_o they_o must_v needs_o feign_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n without_o the_o accident_n of_o it_o 21._o many_o do_v teach_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n affirm_v that_o one_o and_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n undivided_a do_v exist_v upon_o innummerable_a altar_n and_o every_o where_o whole_a 22._o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o and_o yet_o not_o in_o the_o space_n between_o be_v not_o discontinue_v or_o divide_v from_o itself_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o proper_a substance_n or_o quantity_n but_o only_o be_v divide_v from_o itself_o in_o respect_n of_o place_n 23._o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n yea_o in_o innumerable_a place_n on_o earth_n at_o once_o be_v indeed_o visible_a and_o palpable_a in_o heaven_n but_o on_o earth_n invisible_a and_o beyond_o all_o our_o sense_n there_o it_o be_v limit_v and_o circumscribe_v here_o it_o be_v unlimited_a there_o it_o have_v its_o dimension_n here_o it_o be_v free_a from_o all_o dimension_n 24._o moreover_o they_o teach_v a_o oral_n and_o capernaitical_a manducation_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o they_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v real_o and_o sensual_o touch_v break_a and_o eat_v 5._o yea_o that_o wicked_a man_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n do_v chew_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o break_v it_o with_o their_o tooth_n 26._o and_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n devour_v by_o mouse_n and_o dog_n if_o they_o chance_v to_o eat_v the_o host_n 27._o by_o reason_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o transubstantiation_n they_o call_v the_o sacrament_n or_o consecrate_a host_n their_o lord_n and_o god_n 28._o that_o the_o mass_n priest_n when_o he_o make_v the_o sacrament_n or_o as_o they_o themselves_o speak_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o his_o maker_n 29._o the_o priest_n do_v adore_v the_o consecrate_a host_n and_o do_v offer_v it_o to_o other_o by_o lift_v it_o up_o to_o be_v adore_v 30._o and_o for_o the_o same_o end_n they_o keep_v it_o and_o carry_v it_o in_o solemn_a procession_n that_o it_o may_v be_v public_o adore_v 31._o that_o the_o eucharist_n when_o it_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o sick_a be_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o all_o those_o that_o meet_v it_o those_o that_o do_v adore_v it_o be_v to_o have_v indulgence_n those_o that_o do_v adore_v it_o be_v to_o be_v count_v heretic_n and_o be_v to_o be_v persecute_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n 32._o by_o this_o bread-worship_n they_o commit_v great_a idolatry_n whilst_o that_o they_o adore_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n 33._o in_o honour_n of_o this_o breaden-god_n they_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 34._o although_o they_o confess_v christ_n do_v administer_v this_o venerable_a sacrament_n with_o both_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o though_o they_o acknowledge_v this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o both_o element_n yet_o they_o determine_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o laity_n in_o one_o kind_a or_o element_n only_o and_o forbid_v the_o priest_n give_v it_o to_o the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n upon_o
pain_n of_o excommunication_n 35._o they_o teach_v that_o whole_a christ_n be_v in_o either_o of_o the_o element_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o one_o of_o they_o neither_o be_v any_o more_o profit_n reap_v from_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n then_o in_o one_o 36._o nay_o that_o he_o get_v more_o who_o communicate_v in_o one_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n than_o he_o that_o communicate_v in_o both_o without_o that_o huge_a fruit_n of_o obedience_n 37._o but_o this_o take_v away_o of_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n may_v seem_v a_o small_a matter_n for_o it_o be_v do_v but_o once_o every_o year_n at_o which_o time_n the_o sacrament_n be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n for_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v continual_a and_o daily_a they_o deprive_v both_o the_o people_n and_o the_o clergy_n that_o do_v not_o consecrate_v it_o of_o both_o kind_n for_o in_o private_a mass_n it_o be_v hold_v forth_o to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n and_o to_o be_v adore_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o only_o by_o the_o priest_n that_o make_v it_o 38._o way_n they_o urge_v a_o mixture_n of_o water_n with_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n as_o most_o necessary_a 39_o and_o they_o assert_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n can_v be_v right_o take_v but_o of_o those_o that_o fast_o 40._o they_o have_v convert_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o which_o god_n communicate_v christ_n to_o we_o into_o a_o real_a sacrifice_n in_o which_o they_o do_v offer_v up_o christ_n to_o god_n 41._o also_o the_o table_n into_o a_o altar_n and_o the_o administrator_n of_o the_o sacrament_n into_o a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n 42._o they_o say_v this_o new_a sacrifice_a be_v require_v that_o christ_n body_n may_v begin_v to_o be_v a_o oblation_n 43._o that_o christ_n in_o the_o last_o supper_n do_v offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o both_o kind_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o god_n the_o father_n as_o a_o oblation_n 44._o that_o christ_n do_v once_o offer_v up_o himself_o for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o mass_n often_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n 45._o that_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o which_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n only_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o oblation_n be_v without_o blood_n 46._o every_o mass_n priest_n offer_v christ_n to_o god_n the_o father_n pray_v god_n to_o accept_v that_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o command_v that_o it_o may_v be_v carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o angel_n unto_o the_o high_a altar_n of_o god_n 47._o and_o therefore_o they_o make_v the_o priest_n mediator_n between_o god_n and_o christ_n 48._o the_o priest_n in_o offer_v that_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o they_o be_v a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o the_o man_n for_o who_o he_o celebrate_v the_o mass_n 49._o that_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o supper_n do_v this_o command_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n that_o they_o shall_v sacrifice_v he_o and_o offer_v he_o up_o to_o god_n the_o father_n 50._o that_o by_o the_o same_o word_n christ_n do_v appoint_v his_o apostle_n to_o be_v priest_n 51._o that_o one_o never_o to_o be_v repeat_v offer_v of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o have_v consecrate_v those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v for_o ever_o they_o do_v offer_v thousand_o almost_o infinite_a time_n 52._o neither_o do_v they_o do_v it_o only_o at_o divers_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a place_n but_o in_o the_o same_o temple_n they_o celebrate_v divers_a mass_n at_o divers_a altar_n 53._o they_o also_o celebrate_v mass_n ●●e_v they_o offer_v christ_n himself_o to_o god_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o obtain_v their_o intercession_n with_o god_n 54._o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o they_o confess_v be_v without_o blood_n be_v true_o propitiatory_a for_o the_o live_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a 55._o that_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n be_v impetratory_n not_o only_o of_o spiritual_a but_o temporal_a blessing_n hence_o they_o be_v wont_n to_o celebrate_v mass_n i._n e._n offer_v christ_n to_o god_n ●or_a the_o obtain_n of_o health_n for_o defence_n for_o a_o prosperous_a journey_n for_o victory_n in_o war_n and_o all_o other_o such_o temporal_a benefit_n yea_o for_o horse_n and_o hog_n etc._n etc._n 56._o by_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v hire_v they_o be_v wont_a to_o celebrate_v for_o other_o they_o say_v they_o can_v apply_v to_o they_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o take_v away_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o obtain_v all_o manner_n of_o benefit_n 57_o by_o mass_n be_v soul_n deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n 58._o to_o conclude_v they_o have_v most_o filthy_o pollute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n with_o a_o multitude_n of_o foolish_a ceremony_n which_o be_v too_o long_o to_o rehearse_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o they_o place_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n and_o urge_v they_o as_o most_o necessary_a and_o not_o to_o be_v omit_v without_o mortal_a sin_n §_o 9_o of_o their_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n contention_n 1._o that_o repentance_n penance_n be_v a_o sacrament_n proper_o so_o call_v they_o 2._o that_o repentance_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v another_o thing_n from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a and_o al●_n that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v after_o baptism_n be_v another_o thing_n from_o that_o which_o ●s_v before_o for_o that_o repentance_n which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o before_o baptism_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n that_o say_v of_o luther_n be_v heresy_n a_o new_a life_n be_v the_o best_a penance_n grace_n 3._o they_o say_v contrition_n be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o will_n do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o freewill_n or_o a_o sorrow_n voluntary_o assume_v salvation_n 4._o that_o contrition_n do_v deserve_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 5._o we_o that_o its_o necessary_a to_o justification_n that_o sin_v all_o and_o every_o one_o as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v be_v confess_v to_o the_o priest_n as_o to_o a_o judge_n 6._o that_o this_o confession_n be_v meritorious_a of_o remission_n of_o the_o fault_n the_o lessen_v of_o the_o punishment_n the_o open_n of_o paradise_n and_o of_o confidence_n of_o salvavation_n 7._o without_o sacramental_a which_o they_o call_v auricular_a confession_n or_o the_o vow_n of_o it_o sin_n can_v be_v forgive_v 8._o that_o sin_n which_o be_v declare_v under_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v disclose_v though_o it_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o treason_n or_o rebellion_n 9_o worse_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n they_o do_v sacrilegious_o and_o blasphemous_o derogate_v from_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n 10._o they_o teach_v indeed_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v full_a for_o all_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o fault_n and_o also_o the_o punishment_n but_o by_o way_n of_o sufficiency_n not_o by_o way_n of_o efficiency_n but_o satisfaction_n by_o way_n of_o sufficiency_n only_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o satisfaction_n 11._o love_v they_o say_v the_o fault_n be_v remit_v there_o remain_v a_o debt_n of_o punishment_n to_o be_v pay_v for_o which_o satisfaction_n must_v be_v make_v 12._o that_o satisfaction_n be_v require_v for_o the_o compensation_n of_o the_o wrong_n do_v to_o god_n and_o the_o satisfy_n of_o divine_a justice_n 13._o that_o a_o justify_v man_n may_v true_o and_o proper_o make_v satisfation_n not_o only_o to_o the_o church_n but_o even_o to_o god_n himself_o namely_o for_o the_o guilt_n of_o punishment_n which_o remain_v to_o be_v expiate_v after_o the_o fault_n be_v remit_v 14._o that_o it_o be_v unbecoming_a divine_a clemency_n to_o remit_v sin_n without_o our_o own_o satisfaction_n three_o way_n we_o be_v say_v to_o satisfy_v the_o lord_n impossible_a 15._o first_o by_o patient_o bear_v the_o scourge_n and_o punishment_n lay_v on_o we_o by_o god_n 16_o second_o by_o voluntary_a undertake_n laborious_a work_n 17._o three_o by_o undergo_a the_o punishment_n impose_v by_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o priest_n on_o 18._o that_o all_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o be_v account_v for_o true_a and_o proper_a punishment_n of_o sin_n 19_o that_o the_o calamity_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o just_a after_o conversion_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v in_o some_o sense_n to_o compensate_a their_o offence_n 20._o satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o we_o repent_v except_o we_o also_o satisfy_v god_n by_o painful_a and_o satisfactory_a work_n 21._o among_o those_o painful_a work_n they_o reckon_v their_o whip_n of_o themselves_o and_o pilgrimage_n unto_o the_o place_n of_o the_o saint_n etc._n etc._n 22._o self-denial_n prayer_n